Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n faith_n word_n write_a 3,171 5 10.6412 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27015 The safe religion, or, Three disputations for the reformed catholike religion against popery proving that popery is against the Holy Scriptures, the unity of the catholike church, the consent of the antient doctors, the plainest reason, and common judgment of sense it self / by Richard Baxter. Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1657 (1657) Wing B1381; ESTC R16189 289,769 704

There are 43 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

and_o so_o with_o much_o ado_n escape_v death_n i_o think_v notwithstanding_o the_o escape_v of_o these_o last_o we_o may_v well_o conclude_v that_o poison_n be_v no_o safe_a or_o wholesome_a food_n i_o come_v now_o to_o prove_v the_o proposition_n last_o express_v in_o general_a 1._o popery_n be_v no_o way_n to_o salvation_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n god_n have_v no_o where_o prescribe_v it_o as_o a_o way_n to_o salvation_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o a_o way_n to_o salvation_n 2._o it_o be_v the_o way_n towards_o damnation_n and_o from_o salvation_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n the_o proof_n of_o all_o together_o shall_v be_v next_o fetch_v from_o some_o general_a reason_n draw_v from_o the_o dangerous_a nature_n of_o popery_n for_o if_o i_o shall_v descend_v to_o every_o particular_a error_n i_o must_v be_v voluminous_a and_o do_v that_o which_o be_v sufficient_o do_v by_o multitude_n already_o arg._n 1._o those_o doctrine_n which_o be_v found_v upon_o a_o notorious_a falsehood_n and_o resolve_v into_o it_o be_v not_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o such_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o call_v popery_n therefore_o for_o the_o minor_a they_o be_v found_v on_o and_o resolve_v into_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n or_o at_o least_o his_o council_n this_o the_o papist_n do_v confess_v and_o maintain_v but_o that_o this_o be_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n be_v evident_a 1._o in_o that_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o pope_n have_v err_v and_o judicial_o err_v and_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n bellarmine_n be_v put_v to_o answer_v to_o no_o less_o than_o forty_o instance_n of_o err_a pope_n and_o how_o shameful_o or_o shameless_o he_o do_v it_o any_o learned_a man_n that_o will_v search_v the_o record_n and_o peruse_v the_o case_n may_v soon_o discover_v 2_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o council_n have_v err_v i_o shall_v not_o now_o intermix_v my_o testimony_n to_o interrupt_v the_o plain_a course_n which_o i_o have_v begin_v but_o rather_o give_v you_o the_o proof_n of_o all_o this_o distinct_o by_o itself_o in_o the_o next_o disputation_n 3._o the_o papist_n themselves_o confess_v this_o that_o we_o affirm_v i_o mean_v one_o part_n of_o they_o do_v confess_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v as_o the_o french_a and_o the_o other_o the_o italian_n and_o spaniard_n confess_v that_o a_o council_n may_v err_v one_o say_v the_o infallibility_n be_v not_o seat_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v not_o seal_v in_o a_o council_n particular_a or_o general_a of_o which_o see_v bellarmine_n de_fw-fr conciliis_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 10._o &_o 11._o in_o which_o last_o he_o seek_v to_o prove_v that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v err_v 1._o when_o they_o dissent_v from_o the_o pope_n legate_n 2._o and_o when_o they_o consent_v with_o the_o legate_n if_o those_o legate_n do_v cross_v the_o pope_n instruction_n 3._o yea_o if_o the_o legate_n have_v no_o certain_a instruction_n the_o council_n and_o all_o they_o may_v consent_v in_o error_n and_o he_o prove_v the_o two_o former_a by_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o the_o constantinopolitan_a council_n in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o first_o which_o err_v say_v he_o because_o the_o pope_n legate_n follow_v not_o his_o instruction_n the_o three_o he_o prove_v by_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n sess_z 2._o which_o together_o with_o the_o pope_n legate_n do_v by_o common_a consent_n decree_n that_o the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n which_o now_o say_v bell●rmine_n be_v judge_v erroneous_a 4._o some_o pope_n themselves_o have_v confess_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o seat_n or_o chief_a subject_n of_o the_o infallibility_n as_o adrian_n the_o six_o who_o have_v write_v his_o judgement_n of_o it_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v out_o of_o council_n and_o in_o my_o opinion_n we_o shall_v do_v the_o pope_n much_o wrong_n if_o we_o shall_v not_o believe_v he_o when_o he_o speak_v the_o truth_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v fallible_a do_v bellarmine_n better_o know_v pope_n adrian's_n understanding_n than_o the_o pope_n know_v his_o own_o sure_o i_o must_v do_v as_o i_o will_v be_v do_v by_o and_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v persuade_v i_o that_o i_o know_v that_o which_o i_o do_v not_o know_v or_o that_o i_o be_o infallible_a when_o i_o know_v myself_o subject_a to_o error_n i_o shall_v confident_o expect_v that_o all_o man_n will_v rather_o believe_v i_o of_o myself_o then_o believe_v another_o of_o i_o that_o speak_v the_o contrary_a and_o so_o will_v i_o believe_v pope_n adrian_n that_o he_o be_v fallible_a but_o of_o this_o more_o in_o the_o next_o disputation_n where_o you_o shall_v have_v full_a proof_n arg._n 2._o if_o popery_n do_v build_v even_o the_o christian_a religion_n itself_o as_o hold_v by_o they_o on_o a_o foundation_n that_o be_v utter_o uncertain_a or_o else_o certain_o false_a then_o be_v it_o no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n for_o it_o will_v extirpate_v christianity_n itself_o but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a as_o i_o shall_v thus_o prove_v 1._o they_o be_v divide_v and_o disagree_v among_o themselves_o even_o their_o great_a learned_a doctor_n about_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o their_o faith_n as_o i_o shall_v further_o show_v in_o the_o next_o argument_n they_o believe_v upon_o the_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o be_v not_o agree_v what_o that_o church_n be_v 2._o they_o build_v the_o assurance_n of_o their_o faith_n upon_o such_o a_o ground_n as_o none_o of_o the_o common_a people_n no_o nor_o any_o doctor_n in_o the_o world_n can_v have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o therefore_o their_o faith_n must_v needs_o be_v uncertain_a to_o manifest_v this_o i_o shall_v review_v one_o leaf_n that_o i_o write_v heretofore_o on_o this_o subject_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o saint_n rest_v it_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n they_o say_v upon_o which_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o be_v it_o not_o for_o the_o church_n authoritative_a affirmation_n they_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o say_v one_o of_o they_o no_o more_o than_o aesop_n fable_n now_o suppose_v they_o be_v agree_v what_o this_o church_n be_v and_o that_o we_o now_o take_v notice_n of_o their_o more_o common_a opinion_n that_o it_o be_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n head_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n approve_v of_o and_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v how_o the_o faith_n of_o any_o of_o we_o that_o live_v at_o a_o distance_n yea_o or_o of_o any_o man_n live_v can_v be_v sure_a and_o sound_a when_o all_o these_o follow_a particular_n must_v be_v first_o know_v before_o we_o can_v have_v such_o assurance_n 1._o it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o god_n have_v give_v to_o the_o church_n this_o power_n of_o judge_v what_o be_v his_o word_n and_o what_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o what_o not_o so_o that_o that_o be_v so_o to_o we_o which_o they_o judge_v so_o or_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v by_o god_n to_o believe_v they_o now_o which_o way_n do_v god_n give_v the_o church_n this_o power_n be_v it_o not_o by_o scripture_n or_o unwritten_a tradition_n in_o their_o own_o judgement_n and_o by_o what_o mean_n do_v he_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o church_n in_o such_o determination_n it_o must_v be_v also_o by_o scripture_n or_o unwritten_a tradition_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n for_o if_o they_o fly_v to_o universal_a tradition_n and_o natural_a obligation_n they_o give_v up_o their_o cause_n and_o let_v go_v their_o authoritative_a tradition_n and_o obligation_n as_o from_o their_o roman●_n church_n so_o that_o a_o man_n must_v according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n believe_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v or_o unwritten_a have_v give_v power_n to_o the_o church_n to_o determine_v what_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n before_o he_o can_v believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v he_o must_v know_v and_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n before_o he_o can_v know_v and_o believe_v it_o here_o be_v one_o of_o the_o impossibility_n that_o lie_v at_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o roman_a way_n of_o faith_n 2._o before_o man_n can_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n yea_o or_o their_o suppose_a unwritten_a verity_n infallible_o according_a to_o the_o roman_a way_n of_o believe_v they_o must_v first_o know_v that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o her_o judgement_n and_o this_o also_o must_v be_v know_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v suppose_v not_o to_o be_v know_v yet_o itself_o 3._o they_o must_v also_o know_v
centre_n to_o no_o head_n but_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n without_o his_o express_a commission_n manifest_v and_o the_o province_n of_o mexico_n and_o the_o adjacent_a part_n only_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o mind_v and_o subject_a themselves_o to_o the_o usurper_n who_o be_v it_o that_o cause_v the_o schism_n in_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n dominion_n and_o which_o party_n be_v it_o that_o hold_v to_o the_o ancient_a term_n of_o unity_n and_o which_o be_v the_o divider_n i_o need_v not_o stand_v to_o make_v a_o particular_a application_n it_o be_v even_o so_o between_o we_o and_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o romanist_n the_o church_n of_o old_a be_v centre_v only_o in_o christ_n and_o head_v only_o by_o he_o at_o last_o the_o pope_n pretend_v christ_n distance_n and_o invisibility_n and_o a_o commission_n that_o he_o have_v from_o christ_n to_o be_v his_o vicar_n general_n write_v in_o letter_n that_o none_o can_v read_v but_o himself_o and_o his_o party_n will_v needs_o become_v the_o visible_a head_n and_o centre_n and_o whereas_o before_o those_o only_o be_v the_o rebel_n that_o reject_v christ_n now_o all_o must_v be_v rebel_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o aggravate_v the_o crime_n by_o the_o addition_n of_o hypocrisy_n all_o this_o schism_n and_o separation_n must_v be_v carry_v on_o by_o a_o pretence_n of_o unity_n they_o make_v the_o poor_a simple_a people_n believe_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n and_o centre_n there_o be_v no_o unity_n to_o be_v hold_v but_o in_o he_o and_o that_o we_o must_v all_o be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n that_o unite_v not_o in_o he_o and_o that_o all_o our_o division_n be_v cause_v by_o our_o depart_n from_o this_o centre_n of_o unity_n when_o it_o be_v himself_o that_o have_v divide_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o will_v drown_v the_o infamy_n of_o it_o by_o accuse_v other_o of_o the_o same_o sin_n that_o he_o be_v so_o notorious_o guilty_a of_o by_o which_o we_o may_v well_o see_v that_o accuse_v other_o be_v none_o of_o the_o sure_a sign_n of_o innocency_n but_o too_o common_a a_o trick_n to_o divert_v the_o suspicion_n from_o themselves_o when_o the_o papist_n that_o be_v the_o great_a schismatic_n on_o earth_n do_v make_v such_o a_o outcry_n against_o we_o as_o schismatic_n because_o we_o have_v repent_v of_o our_o join_n with_o they_o in_o their_o schism_n and_o will_v not_o confederate_a with_o they_o in_o evil_a against_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o necessary_a mean_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o church_n arg._n 7._o if_o the_o faith_n of_o papist_n as_o papist_n which_o be_v it_o that_o we_o call_v popery_n be_v a_o mere_o uncertain_a changeable_a thing_n so_o that_o a_o man_n can_v never_o tell_v when_o he_o have_v it_o all_o then_o be_v it_o no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o the_o faith_n of_o papists_n as_o such_o be_v such_o a_o mere_o uncertain_a changeable_a thing_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n the_o consequence_n of_o the_o major_n i_o suppose_v they_o will_v grant_v for_o how_o can_v that_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n 1._o which_o be_v uncertain_a 2._o and_o changeable_a when_o the_o true_a way_n to_o salvation_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o change_v not_o since_o christ_n have_v establish_v and_o seal_v his_o law_n all_o the_o question_n therefore_o be_v of_o the_o minor_a which_o i_o prove_v 1._o from_o the_o popish_a principle_n 2._o from_o their_o practice_n both_o which_o do_v plain_o show_v that_o their_o new_a religion_n be_v a_o mere_a weathercock_n that_o must_v fit_v with_o the_o wind_n of_o the_o mutable_a conceit_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n even_o like_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o enthusiast_n that_o wait_v still_o for_o new_a revelation_n to_o be_v superad_v to_o the_o scripture_n and_o first_o for_o their_o principle_n one_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n or_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n or_o manner_n but_o only_o a_o part_n of_o the_o word_n and_o rule_n and_o that_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v the_o other_o part_n yea_o rushworth_n dialogue_n bellarmine_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o ordinary_o tell_v we_o that_o scripture_n be_v not_o chief_o give_v to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n at_o all_o say_v bellarm._n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la li._n 4._o cap._n 12._o finis_fw-la scripturae_fw-la pracipuus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la regula_n fidei_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la variis_fw-la documentis_fw-la exemplis_fw-la adhortationibus_fw-la nunc_fw-la terrendo_fw-la nunc_fw-la instruendo_fw-la nunc_fw-la minando_fw-la nunc_fw-la consolando_fw-la adjuvet_fw-la nos_fw-la in_o hae_fw-la peregrinatione_fw-la that_o be_v the_o chief_a end_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o by_o divers_a document_n example_n adhortation_n sometime_o by_o affright_v sometime_o by_o instruct_v sometime_o by_o threaten_v sometime_o by_o comfort_v it_o may_v help_v we_o in_o this_o our_o peregrination_n it_o be_v then_o unwritten_a tradition_n that_o be_v part_n of_o god_n word_n and_o at_o least_o part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o where_o these_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o what_o they_o be_v and_o how_o many_o and_o by_o what_o note_n they_o may_v all_o be_v know_v either_o they_o dare_v not_o tell_v we_o for_o fear_v of_o bring_v man_n faith_n to_o a_o certainty_n from_o under_o the_o lock_n and_o key_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o else_o in_o tell_v we_o they_o do_v but_o cloud_v the_o business_n with_o general_a term_n or_o else_o disagree_v among_o themselves_o that_o the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v deliver_v to_o we_o infallible_o we_o doubt_v not_o and_o thereby_o we_o know_v the_o canonical_a book_n but_o this_o may_v be_v do_v without_o another_o word_n of_o god_n the_o act_n of_o delivery_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o a_o new_a revelation_n or_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o natural_a mean_n of_o convey_v the_o word_n to_o those_o for_o who_o it_o be_v intend_v and_o the_o object_n of_o that_o act_n of_o delivery_n be_v not_o another_o word_n of_o god_n but_o all_o and_o only_o these_o same_o canonical_a book_n so_o that_o i_o know_v which_o be_v the_o canon_n among_o other_o reason_n because_o i_o can_v prove_v not_o by_o another_o word_n of_o god_n but_o by_o infallible_a humane_a testimony_n such_o as_o i_o have_v of_o the_o law_n of_o this_o land_n that_o the_o bible_n and_o these_o particular_a book_n in_o it_o be_v actual_o deliver_v by_o the_o holy_a writer_n to_o the_o church_n if_o god_n write_v the_o two_o table_n of_o stone_n and_o therein_o make_v know_v that_o they_o be_v his_o law_n and_o then_o deliver_v these_o to_o moses_n this_o deliver_v be_v not_o a_o new_a word_n of_o god_n but_o a_o necessary_a act_n for_o the_o promulgation_n of_o the_o word_n so_o that_o if_o you_o ask_v a_o israelite_n how_o he_o know_v whether_o only_o the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o all_o those_o ten_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o table_n he_o can_v prove_v it_o to_o you_o by_o the_o table_n deliver_v and_o by_o prove_v the_o act_n of_o delivery_n though_o he_o can_v bring_v no_o other_o word_n of_o god_n which_o tell_v you_o what_o be_v in_o those_o table_n and_o indeed_o if_o these_o must_v needs_o be_v another_o word_n of_o god_n beside_o the_o deliver_v act_n to_o prove_v the_o former_a to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o tell_v we_o its_o part_n than_o there_o must_v also_o be_v another_o word_n to_o discover_v that_o second_o word_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o another_o to_o discover_v that_o and_o so_o in_o infinitum_fw-la our_o acknowledge_a necessary_a tradition_n therefore_o be_v not_o another_o materia_fw-la tradita_fw-la or_o word_n of_o god_n but_o only_o one_o of_o the_o actus_fw-la tradendi_fw-la and_o act_n of_o deliver_v the_o same_o matter_n or_o word_n but_o for_o the_o papist_n that_o will_v have_v another_o part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o divine_a faith_n they_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o tell_v we_o what_o it_o be_v and_o where_o and_o to_o let_v we_o understand_v when_o we_o have_v all_o bellarmine_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la scripto_fw-la li._n 4._o cap._n 9_o lay_n down_o five_o rule_n by_o which_o we_o may_v know_v the_o true_a tradition_n the_o first_o be_v when_o the_o whole_a church_n embrace_v any_o thing_n as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n we_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o this_o be_v have_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o second_o be_v when_o the_o universal_a church_n keep_v somewhat_o which_o none_o can_v constitute_v but_o god_n and_o which_o be_v not_o find_v write_v we_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o this_o be_v deliver_v from_o christ_n and_o
the_o determination_n of_o their_o church_n he_o must_v present_o not_o only_a believe_v the_o contrary_a to_o what_o he_o believe_v before_o but_o do_v it_o also_o without_o doubt_v though_o they_o will_v confess_v million_o be_v save_v that_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n though_o not_o without_o doubt_v well_o but_o see_v what_o unity_n be_v procure_v by_o the_o addition_n of_o these_o new_a article_n to_o their_o creed_n the_o french_a doctor_n ascribe_v to_o his_o holiness_n that_o the_o say_v article_n may_v be_v take_v in_o several_a sense_n the_o one_o sense_n be_v heretical_a lutheran_n or_o calvinian_a but_o that_o be_v a_o sense_n that_o the_o word_n lawful_o use_v will_v not_o hear_v but_o only_o may_v malignant_o be_v fasten_v to_o they_o say_v they_o the_o other_o sense_n which_o be_v genuine_a and_o proper_a they_o def●nd_v themselves_o as_o true_a and_o as_o pertain_v to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o augustine_n and_o as_o define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o molina_n and_o the_o adversary_n other_o maintain_v to_o be_v pelagian_a or_o semipelagian_a see_v here_o what_o the_o papist_n themselves_o now_o do_v implicit_o charge_v upon_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o by_o his_o express_a unlimited_a condemnation_n do_v malignant_o fasten_v a_o heretical_a sense_n on_o the_o word_n which_o proper_o they_o will_v not_o bear_v or_o else_o that_o he_o contradict_v augustine_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o anathematize_v the_o christian_a faith_n and_o maintain_v the_o semipelagian_a heresy_n of_o molina_n and_o yet_o must_v we_o judge_v either_o their_o pope_n to_o be_v infallible_a or_o their_o church_n to_o be_v at_o such_o unity_n in_o faith_n as_o they_o will_v make_v the_o ignorant_a vulgar_a believe_v more_o of_o the_o like_a contention_n about_o his_o holiness_n determination_n you_o may_v see_v in_o tho._n whites_n appendicula_fw-la ad_fw-la sonum_fw-la buccinae_fw-la and_o franscus_n macedo_n his_o lituus_fw-la lusitanus_n in_o all_o which_o you_o may_v see_v that_o all_o the_o comfort_n that_o the_o poor_a dominican_n have_v leave_v they_o even_o their_o hope_n of_o salvation_n if_o they_o be_v papist_n indeed_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o the_o pope_n speak_v one_o thing_n and_o mean_v another_o and_o that_o as_o white_a so_o merry_o say_v in_o so_o sad_a a_o matter_n the_o wise_a father_n of_o the_o church_n be_v necessitate_v for_o the_o appease_n of_o contention_n to_o grant_v the_o more_o turbulent_a party_n their_o word_n and_o the_o more_o obedient_a party_n their_o sense_n so_o that_o when_o the_o pope_n have_v do_v all_o that_o he_o can_v to_o determine_v their_o controversy_n they_o will_v still_o say_v that_o he_o determine_v but_o the_o word_n nay_o he_o do_v but_o grant_v one_o party_n their_o word_n and_o not_o the_o meaning_n and_o so_o not_o only_a sense_n but_o bare_a term_n must_v be_v make_v article_n of_o faith_n and_o here_o you_o may_v see_v the_o great_a force_n of_o the_o papist_n argue_v for_o a_o necessity_n of_o a_o live_a judge_n to_o determine_v of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n because_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o ambiguous_a that_o each_o one_o will_v else_o wrest_v it_o his_o own_o way_n and_o do_v we_o not_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v after_o so_o many_o year_n deliberation_n determine_v five_o short_a article_n so_o express_o and_o plain_o even_o when_o he_o do_v it_o of_o purpose_n to_o decide_v the_o controversy_n as_o to_o make_v his_o learned_a doctor_n understand_v he_o but_o that_o each_o party_n do_v take_v his_o word_n to_o be_v either_o for_o or_o not_o against_o their_o opinion_n and_o hold_v their_o opinion_n as_o fast_o since_o his_o determination_n as_o before_o and_o so_o they_o do_v by_o augustine_n thomas_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n each_o party_n confident_o persuade_v the_o world_n that_o they_o be_v of_o their_o side_n and_o may_v not_o god_n have_v the_o honour_n of_o speak_v as_o plain_o as_o the_o pope_n or_o thomas_n or_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o can_v we_o well_o be_v without_o the_o decision_n of_o such_o a_o judge_n as_o can_v speak_v so_o as_o to_o be_v understand_v by_o his_o great_a doctor_n himself_o so_o that_o the_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o romanist_n do_v assure_v we_o that_o their_o faith_n be_v unfixed_a grow_v and_o mutable_a they_o may_v be_v one_o year_n of_o one_o religion_n and_o another_o year_n of_o another_o as_o please_v the_o pope_n a_o dominican_n may_v have_v be_v save_v at_o any_o time_n since_o the_o creation_n till_o may_n 31._o 1653._o when_o the_o pope_n determination_n be_v date_v but_o now_o they_o must_v all_o be_v damn_v for_o heresy_n there_o be_v a_o new_a way_n to_o heaven_n make_v 1653._o that_o never_o be_v before_o and_o for_o aught_o they_o know_v to_o the_o contrary_a before_o their_o pope_n have_v do_v determine_v there_o may_v be_v five_o hundred_o article_n more_o in_o their_o creed_n so_o that_o for_o my_o part_n i_o desire_v not_o either_o to_o be_v shut_v out_o of_o heaven_n at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o every_o new_a pope_n nor_o to_o be_v of_o so_o uncertain_a and_o changeable_a a_o religion_n and_o i_o can_v think_v therefore_o that_o popery_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n arg._n 8._o that_o doctrine_n which_o derogate_v from_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o set_v the_o decree_n of_o man_n above_o it_o enable_v they_o to_o contradict_v its_o most_o express_a institution_n be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o such_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n the_o major_n be_v unquestionable_o true_a among_o true_a christian_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o minor_a i_o shall_v only_o give_v you_o three_o instance_n of_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n because_o i_o intend_v not_o to_o be_v too_o particular_a leave_v i_o be_v too_o large_a the_o first_o be_v their_o affirm_v the_o scripture_n both_o to_o be_v insufficient_a to_o discover_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v but_o one_o part_n of_o god_n word_n and_o tradition_n the_o other_o part_n and_o also_o to_o be_v no_o word_n of_o god_n at_o all_o to_o we_o till_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n do_v authoritative_o determine_v it_o so_o to_o be_v or_o that_o we_o can_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n but_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n determination_n but_o of_o this_o i_o have_v speak_v before_o and_o shall_v do_v more_o in_o another_o dispute_n the_o second_o instance_n that_o i_o give_v be_v their_o change_a christ_n most_o express_a institution_n by_o withhold_v the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n from_o the_o people_n and_o give_v they_o but_o half_a the_o sacrament_n i_o be_o not_o now_o dispute_v about_o the_o efficacy_n or_o inefficacy_n of_o one_o half_a so_o deliver_v but_o prove_v the_o intolerable_a arrogancy_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o dare_v set_v up_o the_o will_n of_o man_n above_o god_n word_n and_o give_v power_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o change_v christ_n institution_n and_o not_o only_o to_o add_v but_o to_o diminish_v and_o express_o to_o contradict_v christ_n and_o forbid_v what_o he_o command_v i_o know_v they_o pretend_v that_o it_o be_v but_o to_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n that_o christ_n give_v the_o cup_n and_o not_o to_o the_o laity_n true_a nor_o the_o bread_n neither_o but_o then_o if_o he_o intend_v that_o none_o but_o the_o clergy_n have_v the_o cup_n why_o may_v they_o not_o as_o well_o say_v so_o of_o the_o bread_n but_o do_v not_o these_o deceiver_n know_v 1._o that_o christ_n give_v this_o reason_n of_o his_o administer_a the_o cup_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n so_o that_o if_o this_o reason_n hold_v to_o other_o if_o his_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o clergy_n than_o the_o command_n extend_v to_o other_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o and_o do_v they_o not_o know_v that_o luke_n further_o intimate_v this_o in_o his_o narration_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o so_o that_o those_o who_o it_o be_v shed_v for_o and_o we_o may_v discern_v to_o be_v believer_n it_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o 2._o and_o do_v they_o not_o know_v that_o paul_n deliver_v the_o doctrine_n both_o of_o the_o bread_n and_o cup_n as_o from_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o corinth_n 1_o cor._n 11._o and_o not_o only_o to_o the_o clergy_n be_v it_o not_o all_o that_o he_o express_o command_v to_o examine_v themselves_o
stitch_v his_o haircloth_n annot._n in_o clemanges_fw-la ex_fw-la caesario_n that_o a_o parrot_n cry_v out_o saint_n thomas_n help_v i_o be_v deliver_v from_o a_o hawk_n legend_n de_fw-fr thom_n cant._n that_o saint_n lupus_n do_v shut_v up_o the_o devil_n in_o a_o tankard_n all_o night_n legend_n de_fw-fr lupo_n that_o saint_n dominicke_n make_v the_o devil_n hold_v he_o the_o candle_n till_o he_o burn_v his_o finger_n legend_n de_fw-fr domin_n vid._n melch._n can._n loc_n theol._n that_o saint_n francis_n swallow_v a_o spider_n in_o a_o chalice_n it_o come_v whole_a out_o of_o his_o thigh_n vid._n franscis_fw-la that_o friar_n andrew_n to_o correct_v his_o appetite_n of_o eat_v bird_n at_o the_o table_n by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n command_v they_o to_o fly_v away_o after_o they_o be_v roast_v sedu●●_n francis_n i_o will_v not_o trouble_v you_o with_o the_o recital_n of_o more_o nor_o do_v i_o say_v that_o their_o council_n have_v make_v these_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o their_o church_n do_v indulge_v and_o make_v use_n of_o such_o lie_v for_o the_o beguile_n of_o the_o vulgar_a 3._o the_o three_o instance_n that_o i_o give_v be_v their_o abominable_a forgery_n and_o depravation_n of_o ancient_a write_n feign_v decretal_a epistle_n of_o their_o pope_n and_o many_o other_o write_n under_o the_o name_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o presume_v to_o expunge_v alter_v and_o falsify_v the_o true_a write_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o better_a sort_n of_o their_o own_o as_o be_v prove_v already_o against_o they_o by_o many_o and_o i_o need_v not_o here_o recite_v see_v doctor_n featlyes_n aforesaid_a confer_v append._n which_o have_v do_v we_o so_o great_a a_o mischief_n by_o make_v much_o if_o not_o most_o of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_n uncertain_a to_o we_o as_o be_v scarce_o easy_o expressable_a nor_o be_v they_o ever_o able_a to_o repair_v as_o the_o late_a king_n of_o england_n tell_v the_o marquis_n of_o worcester_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o conference_n see_v more_o in_o doctor_n willet_n tetrastilon_n papismi_fw-la 5._o another_o of_o the_o principal_a prop_n of_o popery_n have_v be_v most_o horrid_a inhuman_a bloodshed_n and_o cruelty_n how_o many_o thousand_o of_o the_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n they_o cruel_o murder_v in_o savoy_n and_o france_n since_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o one_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o how_o many_o in_o bohemia_n how_o many_o in_o other_o country_n who_o can_v possible_o enumerate_v cesarius_n say_v the_o waldenses_n have_v infect_v a_o thousand_o city_n parson_n say_v that_o they_o be_v so_o numerous_a that_o they_o have_v a_o army_n of_o seventy_o thousand_o man_n to_o fight_v for_o they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v so_o spread_v even_o in_o germany_n that_o they_o can_v travail_v from_o colen_n to_o milan_n in_o italy_n and_o every_o night_n lodge_v with_o host_n of_o their_o own_o profession_n yet_o do_v the_o papist_n by_o fire_n and_o sword_n disperse_v destroy_v they_o from_o the_o year_n 1206._o to_o 1228._o they_o have_v so_o fill_v their_o prison_n with_o those_o that_o they_o have_v leave_v that_o the_o archbishop_n stay_v it_o because_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o defray_v the_o charge_n of_o their_o food_n or_o to_o build_v prison_n for_o they_o as_o they_o themselves_o speak_v yet_o after_o this_o 1260._o morrel_n in_o his_o memorial_n say_v p._n ●4_n that_o there_o be_v above_o eight_o hundred_o thousand_o person_n that_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o waldenses_n and_o some_o of_o their_o own_o popish_a writer_n say_v that_o it_o be_v so_o ancient_a that_o they_o affirm_v themselves_o to_o have_v thus_o continue_v successive_o from_o the_o apostle_n and_o yet_o the_o papist_n will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o luther_n be_v the_o first_o founder_n of_o the_o reformation_n i_o desire_v the_o reader_n that_o can_v have_v it_o to_o read_v mr._n s._n clark_n general_a martyrology_n of_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n and_o also_o of_o the_o spanish_a inquisition_n the_o bohemian_a and_o french_a cruelty_n and_o the_o irish_a of_o late_a to_o spare_v i_o the_o labour_n of_o further_a recital_n the_o very_a perfidious_a french_a massacre_n at_o once_o be_v think_v in_o a_o few_o day_n space_n and_o a_o little_a room_n to_o murder_v about_o thirty_o thousand_o person_n and_o this_o in_o a_o pretence_n of_o peace_n and_o quietness_n so_o many_o bloody_a bout_n have_v that_o nation_n have_v that_o it_o be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v still_o unavenge_v the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o inquisition_n in_o spain_n another_o part_n will_v hardly_o here_o be_v believe_v the_o most_o horrid_a cruelty_n of_o the_o papist_n in_o ireland_n late_o be_v beyond_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o number_n that_o they_o murder_v in_o time_n of_o peace_n by_o a_o sudden_a insurrection_n be_v almost_o incredible_a in_o the_o very_a province_n of_o ulster_n alone_o about_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o thousand_o be_v compute_v to_o be_v murder_v but_o god_n have_v go_v far_o in_o avenge_a their_o blood_n already_o what_o shall_v we_o mention_v such_o lesser_a matter_n as_o the_o burn_a so_o many_o in_o queen_n mary_n day_n the_o powder_n plot_n to_o have_v blow_v up_o king_n and_o parliament_n with_o many_o such_o fruit_n of_o the_o roman_a fury_n in_o a_o word_n i_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o christ_n that_o have_v be_v so_o long_o uphold_v by_o such_o devilish_a inhuman_a bloody_a mean_n nor_o be_v it_o like_v to_o be_v true_a doctrine_n which_o possess_v man_n with_o such_o a_o bloodthirsty_a spirit_n nor_o be_v it_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n to_o swim_v thither_o through_o the_o blood_n of_o saint_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o better_a than_o a_o cruel_a scorn_v of_o christ_n when_o they_o have_v persecute_v he_o to_o murder_v christian_n by_o thousand_o for_o seek_v reformation_n or_o not_o yield_v to_o the_o romish_a error_n and_o then_o to_o challenge_v we_o to_o name_n or_o show_v our_o reform_a church_n before_o luther_n or_o to_o accuse_v we_o of_o schism_n for_o separate_v from_o they_o these_o wolf_n will_v accuse_v where_o they_o can_v devour_v arg_n 12._o if_o popery_n do_v add_v to_o all_o these_o abomination_n impenitency_n and_o uncurableness_n than_o it_o be_v certain_o no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o popery_n do_v add_v to_o all_o these_o abomination_n impenitency_n and_o uncurableness_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n i_o do_v not_o mean_v that_o the_o person_n be_v simple_o uncurrable_a but_o while_o they_o be_v papist_n or_o go_v according_a to_o their_o fundamental_a principle_n they_o be_v utter_o uncurable_a and_o impenitent_a for_o their_o principle_n be_v that_o their_o pope_n or_o church_n can_v err_v but_o be_v infallible_a and_o so_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o stand_v to_o all_o their_o determination_n right_a or_o wrong_n for_o if_o they_o shall_v repent_v of_o any_o and_o we_o return_v from_o any_o small_a or_o great_a they_o shall_v in_o so_o do_v proclaim_v that_o they_o be_v fallible_a and_o so_o let_v go_v the_o principle_n of_o their_o profession_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n of_o any_o error_n once_o determine_v of_o but_o only_o by_o recant_v the_o point_n of_o their_o infallibility_n to_o make_v way_n thereto_o if_o therefore_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n be_v of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n what_o will_v become_v of_o these_o man_n that_o suppose_v themselves_o so_o infallible_a and_o how_o can_v that_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n that_o lock_v up_o the_o door_n against_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n popery_n therefore_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n arg._n 13._o that_o profession_n which_o plunge_v man_n into_o certain_a perjury_n and_o engage_v they_o to_o impossibility_n and_o contradictory_n be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o such_o be_v the_o profession_n of_o popery_n as_o i_o shall_v prove_v even_o out_o of_o the_o trent_n oath_n or_o confession_n which_o i_o recite_v in_o the_o beginning_n 1._o they_o vow_v and_o swear_v that_o all_o other_o thing_n deliver_v define_v and_o declare_v by_o the_o sacred_a canon_n and_o ecumenical_a council_n and_o especial_o the_o holy_a synod_n of_o trent_n they_o do_v without_o doubt_v receive_v and_o profess_v when_o as_o many_o of_o these_o canon_n and_o council_n be_v contrary_a each_o to_o other_o one_o undo_v what_o another_o do_v as_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v show_v and_o yet_o they_o swear_v to_o receive_v they_o all_o 2._o they_o swear_v to_o receive_v they_o even_o without_o doubt_v when_o as_o they_o be_v thus_o contradictory_n and_o when_o they_o confess_v that_o a_o true_a faith_n even_o in_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n may_v have_v doubt_v mix_v with_o it_o 3._o they_o vow_v and_o swear_v
ground_n of_o our_o belief_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n or_o of_o our_o receive_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n n._n have_v already_o inquire_v whether_o the_o romanist_n or_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v in_o the_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n we_o shall_v now_o more_o particular_o inquire_v whether_o their_o faith_n or_o we_o be_v build_v on_o the_o sure_a ground_n our_o belief_n be_v thus_o resolve_v we_o believe_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a because_o the_o true_a god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o we_o discern_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o both_o by_o his_o intrinsicke_a and_o extrinsicke_a seal_n or_o attestation_n of_o it_o in_o that_o it_o bear_v his_o image_n and_o superscription_n and_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o undoubted_a uncontrole_v miracle_n and_o other_o effect_n which_o lead_v we_o to_o the_o cause_n the_o reveal_n contain_v sign_n or_o character_n be_v the_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o these_o book_n be_v write_v by_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n and_o be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n and_o be_v uncorrupted_a in_o the_o main_a we_o be_v infallible_o assure_v of_o by_o the_o evident_a certainty_n of_o the_o historical_a attestation_n and_o tradition_n for_o we_o depend_v not_o bare_o on_o the_o credit_n of_o a_o deceivable_a or_o deceitful_a man_n such_o as_o be_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o any_o fallible_a society_n of_o man_n but_o on_o such_o history_n as_o we_o can_v prove_v by_o plain_a reason_n to_o be_v infallible_a contain_v in_o it_o beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o his_o party_n the_o same_o testimony_n also_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n yea_o and_o of_o the_o very_a heretic_n who_o be_v enemy_n to_o much_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o enough_o also_o even_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o infidel_n to_o confirm_v we_o so_o that_o by_o this_o infallible_a history_n and_o universal_a tradition_n we_o have_v a_o full_a discovery_n that_o these_o book_n be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n then_o we_o have_v that_o the_o statute_n of_o parliament_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n james_n or_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v the_o same_o that_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v and_o to_o a_o man_n that_o hear_v not_o god_n himself_o or_o the_o lord_n jesus_n or_o the_o apostle_n and_o have_v not_o their_o immediate_a inspiration_n we_o know_v not_o how_o the_o law_n of_o heaven_n shall_v be_v more_o fit_o deliver_v in_o a_o ordinary_a rational_a way_n nor_o what_o sure_a other_n mean_v such_o as_o we_o can_v expect_v who_o live_v at_o such_o a_o distance_n from_o the_o first_o receiver_n of_o it_o unless_o we_o will_v have_v god_n to_o speak_v to_o every_o man_n as_o he_o do_v to_o moses_n or_o have_v christ_n or_o apostles_n still_o among_o we_o or_o unless_o god_n must_v make_v we_o all_o prophet_n by_o his_o extraordinary_a inspiration_n and_o last_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o this_o word_n we_o understand_v as_o we_o do_v the_o meaning_n of_o other_o law_n or_o write_n have_v moreover_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v necessary_a because_o of_o the_o sublimity_n and_o spirituality_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o great_a effect_n upon_o our_o heart_n our_o teacher_n by_o translation_n and_o further_a instruction_n be_v our_o helper_n as_o they_o must_v be_v in_o other_o thing_n that_o we_o will_v learn_v and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o they_o without_o and_o of_o the_o spirit_n within_o we_o be_v able_a to_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n especial_o compare_v text_n with_o text_n and_o so_o receive_v the_o sanctify_a impress_n upon_o our_o heart_n and_o thus_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o reform_a catholic_a resolve_v he_o receive_v the_o bible_n from_o the_o hand_n or_o mouth_n of_o his_o teacher_n and_o perhaps_o first_o believe_v they_o fide_fw-la humana_fw-la that_o it_o be_v god_n word_n he_o know_v that_o this_o book_n be_v write_v in_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n by_o infallible_a history_n or_o universal_a tradition_n he_o know_v that_o they_o do_v it_o by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o image_n of_o god_n which_o he_o find_v on_o it_o and_o by_o the_o uncontrole_v miracle_n by_o which_o they_o seal_v it_o he_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v true_a because_o it_o thus_o proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o be_v most_o true_a of_o the_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n see_v l._n du_fw-fr plessis_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 4._o translat_fw-la pag._n 121.122_o 123._o and_o conradus_n bergius_n prax._n cathol_n can._n p._n 208.209_o 210._o disp_n 2._o §_o 125_o 126._o to_o this_o same_o sense_n vid._n &_o sibrand_n lubbert_n princip_n christ_n dogm_n li._n 1._o pag._n 20_o etc._n etc._n what_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v the_o question_n which_o we_o be_v now_o to_o discuss_v do_v intimate_v in_o part_n for_o it_o can_v be_v lay_v down_o in_o one_o proposition_n because_o they_o be_v of_o so_o many_o mind_n themselves_o indeed_o we_o may_v see_v in_o this_o their_o foundation_n that_o popery_n be_v a_o very_a maze_n and_o dungeon_n for_o the_o builder_n of_o this_o babel_n be_v all_o in_o confusion_n at_o the_o lay_n of_o their_o first_o stone_n yet_o this_o much_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v most_o agree_v in_o 2._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o duty_n 3._o but_o not_o the_o whole_a rule_n nor_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n but_o that_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v the_o other_o part_n 8._o and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v god_n word_n after_o a_o sort_n as_o they_o speak_v that_o the_o scripture_n have_v its_o authority_n in_o itself_o from_o god_n the_o prime_a truth_n but_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la as_o to_o we_o it_o have_v its_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o act_n of_o tradition_n or_o the_o unwritten_a part_n of_o god_n word_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o a_o divine_a revelation_n biblia_fw-la and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n to_o judge_v both_o of_o this_o tradition_n and_o the_o scripture_n as_o also_o to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n in_o religion_n and_o to_o judge_v which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o this_o church_n must_v be_v one_o only_o visible_a infallible_a authorize_v thus_o to_o judge_v by_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v only_o the_o roman_a church_n thus_o far_o the_o most_o of_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v agree_v but_o when_o these_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n come_v to_o be_v open_v they_o fall_v all_o to_o piece_n for_o 1._o sometime_o they_o say_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v god_n word_n after_o a_o sort_n sometime_o that_o it_o be_v some_o middle_a thing_n between_o a_o testimony_n divine_a and_o humane_a 3._o 2._o and_o what_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n be_v they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o a_o mind_n whether_o it_o be_v only_o the_o prime_a truth_n or_o whether_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o material_a object_n be_v any_o part_n of_o the_o formal_a but_o i_o confess_v this_o controversy_n be_v more_o verbal_a than_o real_a 3._o ●1_n and_o what_o place_n here_o to_o assign_v to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v not_o agree_v neither_o etc._n 4._o especial_o they_o be_v divide_v in_o the_o main_a viz._n what_o this_o church_n be_v which_o be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n and_o into_o who_o judgement_n their_o faith_n be_v resolve_v whether_o it_o be_v the_o present_a church_n or_o the_o former_a church_n whether_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n only_o at_o least_o in_o case_n of_o difference_n between_o he_o and_o his_o council_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o general_n council_n though_o the_o pope_n agree_v not_o as_o the_o french_a and_o venetian_n say_v waldensem_fw-la yea_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o clergy_n only_o or_o the_o laity_n also_o that_o be_v this_o church_n nay_o some_o of_o they_o plead_v universal_a tradition_n as_o holden_n white_n vane_n and_o divers_a other_o englishman_n of_o late_a as_o if_o that_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o roman_a tradition_n or_o as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o point_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o they_o and_o ordinary_o they_o use_v to_o tell_v we_o of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o to_o mouth_n it_o in_o such_o swell_a word_n that_o the_o simple_a hearer_n will_v little_o think_v that_o by_o all_o the_o church_n they_o mean_v but_o one_o man_n or_o at_o the_o
to_o deliver_v they_o down_o to_o posterity_n in_o the_o purity_n as_o they_o receive_v they_o and_o to_o translate_v they_o into_o know_v tongue_n that_o the_o people_n may_v understand_v they_o though_o other_o also_o have_v a_o part_n in_o this_o work_n yet_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v by_o office_n the_o chief_a part_n 4._o it_o belong_v to_o they_o also_o to_o be_v witness_n and_o informer_n of_o the_o people_n how_o themselves_o do_v receive_v the_o faith_n and_o scripture_n from_o their_o ancestor_n and_o to_o show_v they_o how_o it_o come_v down_o to_o our_o hand_n by_o certain_a infallible_a tradition_n from_o age_n to_o age._n 5._o the_o church_n guide_v they_o be_v both_o preserver_n of_o the_o scripture_n witness_n of_o the_o tradition_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o have_v such_o a_o power_n of_o judge_a a●_n belong_v to_o all_o these_o three_o 6._o in_o these_o act_n of_o their_o office_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o that_o on_o a_o threefold_a account_n 1._o because_o of_o the_o evidence_n which_o they_o show_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o assertion_n though_o strict_o this_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v call_v learning_n and_o so_o know_v then_o believe_v and_o be_v common_a to_o teacher_n with_o any_o other_o that_o show_v the_o same_o proof_n yet_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o ordinary_o they_o have_v much_o more_o knowledge_n in_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o teach_v then_o other_o man_n have_v therefore_o we_o may_v well_o say_v that_o it_o more_o belong_v to_o they_o to_o convince_v and_o more_o efficacy_n be_v in_o their_o teach_v because_o of_o their_o proof_n and_o better_a entertainment_n be_v due_a to_o their_o teach_v 2._o such_o a_o belief_n also_o be_v due_a to_o they_o as_o all_o man_n shall_v have_v in_o their_o own_o procession_n wherein_o they_o have_v long_o study_v and_o lay_v out_o their_o time_n and_o labour_n and_o wherein_o they_o be_v common_o know_v to_o excel_v other_o man_n every_o man_n that_o be_v less_o study_v in_o law_n physic_n or_o any_o other_o science_n or_o art_n be_v bind_v in_o reason_n to_o give_v some_o credit_n to_o lawyer_n physician_n and_o other_o that_o study_v and_o practise_v those_o arts._n this_o be_v but_o a_o humane_a faith_n 3._o beside_o this_o credit_n before_o mention_v which_o infidel_n themselves_o may_v give_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o their_o capacity_n there_o be_v a_o further_a credit_n due_a to_o they_o from_o profess_a believer_n and_o that_o be_v as_o they_o be_v officer_n authorize_v by_o christ_n and_o have_v a_o promise_n of_o his_o assistance_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n which_o though_o it_o make_v they_o not_o infallible_a in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o do_v it_o assure_v they_o of_o a_o more_o than_o common_a help_n of_o christ_n if_o they_o be_v his_o servant_n indeed_o 7._o there_o be_v more_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o belief_n due_a to_o many_o pastor_n caeteris_fw-la paribus_fw-la than_o to_o one_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n than_o to_o any_o part_n 8._o the_o credit_n of_o the_o church_n or_o any_o pastor_n in_o witness_v to_o the_o faith_n depend_v on_o their_o competency_n for_o such_o a_o testimony_n which_o consist_v in_o their_o sufficency_n or_o ability_n and_o their_o fidelity_n which_o they_o be_v rational_o to_o manifest_v that_o it_o may_v gain_v credit_n with_o other_o 9_o in_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v leave_v undetermined_a in_o scripture_n and_o commit_v to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o determine_v of_o they_o have_v a_o decisive_n power_n 1._o for_o the_o time_n or_o place_n or_o the_o like_a circumstance_n of_o god_n worship_n they_o be_v necessary_a in_o general_n viz._n there_o must_v be_v some_o time_n place_n etc._n etc._n but_o not_o in_o specie_fw-la such_o a_o time_n such_o a_o place_n be_v not_o necessary_a unless_o it_o be_v some_o that_o god_n have_v already_o make_v choice_n of_o here_o the_o church_n guide_v must_v authoritative_o determine_v whereupon_o the_o people_n be_v oblige_v to_o obey_v unless_o in_o some_o extraordinary_a case_n where_o the_o determination_n be_v so_o perverse_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o general_n rule_v which_o scripture_n have_v give_v for_o it_o that_o it_o will_v overthrow_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o duty_n itself_o 2._o and_o in_o case_n of_o church_n censure_n when_o any_o man_n be_v accuse_v to_o deserve_v excommunication_n the_o church_n governor_n have_v a_o judicial_a decisive_n power_n as_o to_o those_o end_n though_o not_o to_o make_v a_o man_n guilty_a that_o be_v innocent_a yet_o to_o oblige_v the_o people_n to_o avoid_v communion_n with_o the_o person_n who_o they_o excommunicate_v except_o in_o such_o palpable_a maladministration_n and_o evident_a contradiction_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o may_v nullify_v their_o sentence_n for_o even_o here_o their_o power_n be_v not_o unlimited_a 10._o no_o man_n or_o company_n of_o man_n much_o less_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o proper_a decisive_n judicial_a power_n in_o matter_n of_o christian_a faith_n or_o whether_o the_o scripture_n or_o any_o part_n of_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o not_o for_o the_o open_n of_o this_o understand_v what_o we_o mean_v by_o a_o decisive_n judicial_a power_n to_o wit_n such_o as_o a_o judge_n have_v in_o a_o controvert_v cause_n where_o the_o plaintiff_n and_o defendant_n must_v stand_v to_o his_o judgement_n be_v it_o right_n or_o wrong_n so_o that_o though_o the_o sentence_n be_v not_o just_a yet_o must_v it_o be_v decisive_n and_o obligatory_a so_o that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o judge_n in_o utramque_fw-la partem_fw-la on_o either_o side_n and_o the_o judgement_n must_v be_v valid_a such_o a_o decisive_n power_n no_o creature_n have_v in_o these_o case_n that_o we_o have_v now_o in_o hand_n where_o let_v it_o be_v still_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o name_n but_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o contend_v about_o if_o they_o will_v call_v that_o a_o decisive_n judicial_a power_n which_o be_v so_o limit_v to_o one_o part_n or_o side_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v valid_a or_o obligatory_a to_o the_o subject_n if_o it_o err_v or_o go_v on_o the_o other_o side_n concern_v which_o all_o man_n have_v a_o judgement_n of_o discern_v grant_v they_o by_o god_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v able_a to_o discern_v they_o have_v leave_v and_o authority_n than_o we_o easy_o grant_v that_o every_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v thus_o far_o the_o judge_n of_o faith_n and_o scripture_n that_o be_v if_o any_o man_n doubt_v whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o ask_v a_o preacher_n or_o bishop_n he_o have_v power_n to_o say_v yea_o but_o not_o to_o say_v no_o but_o this_o be_v no_o judicial_a power_n but_o a_o teach_v and_o witness_v act_n for_o the_o people_n be_v bind_v to_o disobey_v they_o if_o they_o err_v and_o therefore_o bind_v to_o ●ry_v whether_o they_o err_v or_o not_o and_o not_o to_o follow_v their_o judgement_n further_o than_o it_o be_v right_a and_o sound_a therefore_o they_o have_v no_o decide_v judicial_a power_n which_o i_o prove_v thus_o arg._n 1._o if_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o have_v such_o a_o judicial_a decisive_n power_n then_o may_v they_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o god_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o redeemer_n that_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o they_o may_v cast_v faith_n and_o scripture_n out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o this_o be_v false_a and_o abominable_a therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o such_o power_n for_o the_o consequence_n it_o be_v manifest_a suppose_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v give_v judgement_n against_o god_n christ_n or_o scripture_n than_o man_n must_v by_o this_o doctrine_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v it_o and_o forsake_v god_n christ_n and_o scripture_n for_o the_o pope_n whereunto_o add_v a_o second_o argument_n from_o a_o further_a absurdity_n then_o either_o such_o as_o renounce_v god_n christ_n and_o scripture_n may_v be_v save_v or_o else_o god_n bind_v man_n by_o the_o pope_n to_o renounce_v he_o and_o the_o faith_n to_o their_o own_o damnation_n but_o both_o these_o consequent_n be_v false_a and_o abominable_a therefore_o i_o know_v they_o will_v here_o reply_v that_o we_o must_v not_o suppose_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v in_o his_o judgement_n and_o therefore_o be_v infallible_a he_o will_v certain_o make_v no_o such_o false_a decision_n to_o which_o i_o say_v 1._o why_o then_o shall_v it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n have_v give_v authority_n to_o decide_v in_o utramque_fw-la partem_fw-la on_o either_o side_n do_v god_n give_v a_o man_n authority_n to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o have_v promise_v he_o and_o all_o other_o that_o he_o shall_v never_o do_v but_o he_o will_v
and_o evil_a heb._n 5.14_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o have_v the_o people_n to_o have_v a_o judgement_n of_o discern_v if_o they_o must_v not_o discern_v they_o must_v be_v ignorant_a when_o god_n so_o much_o require_v and_o extoll_v knowledge_n but_o i_o will_v leave_v this_o question_n and_o pass_v to_o the_o next_o qu._n 2._o whether_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a in_o this_o decisive_n judgement_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o which_o we_o deny_v but_o before_o i_o come_v to_o give_v the_o reason_n of_o our_o denial_n i_o shall_v further_o declare_v our_o judgement_n about_o the_o whole_a matter_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n that_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n may_v appear_v and_o 1._o we_o easy_o grant_v that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o objective_a certainty_n in_o all_o point_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o in_o the_o very_a truth_n so_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a while_o he_o believe_v and_o declare_v nothing_o but_o the_o truth_n he_o and_o every_o man_n else_o that_o speak_v according_a to_o god_n word_n be_v so_o far_o infallible_a because_o that_o word_n be_v infallible_a they_o need_v not_o thank_v we_o for_o this_o concession_n 2._o we_o grant_v that_o neither_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o a_o true_a church_n nor_o any_o other_o particular_a true_a church_n can_v err_v in_o fundamental_o or_o in_o point_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la that_o be_v while_o they_o remain_v a_o true_a church_n they_o never_o deny_v the_o essential_o of_o a_o true_a church_n for_o if_o they_o once_o deny_v the_o essential_o they_o do_v eo_fw-la nomine_fw-la cease_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n 3._o we_o grant_v that_o christ_n universal_a church_n shall_v never_o deny_v any_o one_o point_n of_o faith_n essential_a to_o christianity_n or_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o then_o christ_n shall_v have_v no_o true_a church_n on_o earth_n when_o the_o whole_a shall_v thus_o apostatise_v or_o turn_v heretic_n and_o all_o the_o then_o present_a world_n shall_v be_v damn_v 4._o the_o church_n as_o reasonable_a sensible_a man_n be_v infallible_a in_o many_o matter_n of_o fact_n of_o which_o they_o may_v give_v we_o unerring_a report_n as_o that_o this_o bible_n be_v deliver_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o their_o ancestor_n as_o they_o may_v testify_v it_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o and_o that_o this_o creed_n or_o sum_n of_o faith_n also_o be_v thus_o deliver_v in_o the_o word_n now_o in_o use_n etc._n etc._n 5._o there_o be_v a_o infallible_a certainty_n in_o the_o evidence_n which_o the_o former_a church_n have_v leave_v and_o the_o present_a church_n possess_v to_o prove_v that_o this_o same_o scripture_n be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n and_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o first_o church_n and_o from_o they_o down_o to_o we_o and_o that_o multitude_n of_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o they_o 6._o a_o illiterate_a person_n may_v have_v a_o infallible_a certainty_n that_o all_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v express_v in_o certain_a translation_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o so_o far_o and_o much_o further_o they_o be_v true_o translate_v and_o that_o such_o thing_n there_o be_v in_o that_o book_n as_o the_o reader_n affirm_v there_o to_o be_v though_o himself_o can_v read_v they_o for_o all_o this_o be_v infallible_o discover_v by_o common_a consent_n and_o especial_o of_o adversary_n when_o all_o man_n that_o be_v certain_o able_a to_o judge_v and_o be_v honest_a and_o impartial_a affirm_v it_o without_o doubt_n and_o those_o that_o will_v glad_o contradict_v it_o as_o be_v by_o their_o interest_n carry_v thereto_o yet_o can_v do_v it_o or_o at_o least_o not_o with_o any_o considerable_a pretence_n this_o give_v man_n as_o infallible_a a_o proof_n as_o the_o common_a testimony_n of_o man_n do_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o city_n as_o rome_n or_o paris_n which_o we_o never_o see_v 7._o and_o we_o further_o grant_v all_o that_o teach_v and_o witness_v power_n to_o the_o church_n officer_n which_o be_v express_v under_o the_o last_o question_n and_o all_o that_o dueness_n of_o belief_n and_o obedience_n to_o they_o which_o be_v there_o assert_v so_o much_o for_o our_o concession_n but_o we_o deny_v 1._o that_o either_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o a_o general_n council_n be_v natural_o or_o supernatural_o privilege_v from_o all_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o god_n reveal_v will_n or_o that_o they_o be_v privilege_v from_o the_o danger_n or_o possibility_n of_o teach_v these_o their_o error_n to_o other_o even_o to_o the_o church_n 2._o we_o deny_v that_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o roman_a clergy_n be_v secure_v from_o the_o danger_n of_o apostasy_n or_o heresy_n they_o may_v fall_v so_o far_o as_o to_o deny_v the_o fundamental_o or_o essential_o of_o christianity_n though_o the_o universal_a church_n shall_v never_o so_o fall_v away_o we_o shall_v first_o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n and_o afterward_o of_o a_o general_n council_n that_o we_o may_v speak_v to_o the_o several_a party_n among_o the_o divide_a papist_n herein_o and_o against_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n we_o thus_o argue_v argu._n 1_o they_o that_o lie_v claim_v to_o this_o infallibility_n do_v give_v we_o no_o proof_n of_o their_o claim_n therefore_o they_o can_v expect_v that_o we_o shall_v believe_v they_o the_o proof_n lie_v on_o the_o pretender_n who_o give_v we_o no_o proof_n if_o they_o can_v prove_v it_o it_o must_v be_v either_o by_o his_o natural_a perfection_n or_o some_o supernatural_a endowment_n by_o which_o the_o pope_n must_v be_v more_o infallible_a than_o other_o man_n the_o former_a they_o pretend_v not_o to_o and_o no_o wonder_n the_o late_a they_o do_v pretend_v to_o but_o if_o god_n supernatural_o have_v ascertain_v all_o pope_n of_o a_o infallibility_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n than_o he_o have_v do_v this_o either_o by_o his_o write_a word_n or_o by_o unwritten_a tradition_n or_o both_o by_o which_o it_o must_v to_o we_o be_v prove_v but_o he_o have_v do_v it_o neither_o by_o his_o write_a word_n nor_o by_o unwritten_a tradition_n for_o tradition_n they_o must_v show_v it_o we_o either_o in_o certain_a monument_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o stead_n of_o write_v but_o that_o they_o can_v do_v or_o else_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o which_o concern_v all_o their_o salvation_n must_v be_v deliver_v to_o all_o but_o this_o they_o can_v show_v nay_o we_o show_v they_o the_o contrary_n that_o be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o present_a church_n on_o earth_n deny_v any_o such_o tradition_n and_o the_o most_o approve_a writer_n of_o the_o former_a age_n tell_v we_o the_o contrary_a and_o all_o take_v the_o pope_n as_o fallible_a so_o that_o they_o can_v give_v we_o one_o line_n of_o any_o one_o father_n or_o council_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n that_o ever_o have_v such_o a_o conceit_n as_o they_o and_o if_o they_o will_v pretend_v to_o a_o private_a tradition_n which_o none_o but_o themselves_o have_v receive_v and_o be_v entrust_v with_o and_o so_o make_v themselves_o the_o absolute_a judge_n of_o their_o own_o cause_n and_o give_v we_o no_o proof_n but_o their_o own_o word_n we_o will_v believe_v they_o as_o fast_o as_o we_o can_v but_o we_o must_v desire_v they_o not_o to_o be_v too_o hasty_a with_o we_o and_o for_o the_o write_a word_n they_o can_v thence_o prove_v a_o grant_n of_o their_o infallibility_n 1._o because_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o can_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o by_o their_o infallible_a judgement_n therefore_o we_o must_v know_v their_o judgement_n to_o be_v infallible_a first_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v first_o to_o be_v know_v some_o other_o way_n and_o not_o by_o scripture_n indeed_o here_o they_o have_v long_o tire_v themselves_o in_o their_o circle_n which_o some_o of_o they_o will_v hide_v by_o vain_a word_n if_o they_o can_v but_o holden_n and_o other_o of_o they_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v it_o and_o that_o they_o have_v no_o way_n out_o but_o by_o retire_v to_o the_o universal_a testimony_n or_o tradition_n as_o a_o infallible_a evidence_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o authoritative_a judgement_n or_o infallibility_n or_o private_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o can_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o their_o church_n and_o that_o be_v in_o the_o issue_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o when_o we_o call_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o that_o infallibility_n they_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o this_o be_v plain_o to_o say_v that_o neither_o scripture_n nor_o
extraordinary_a way_n it_o be_v give_v to_o they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v deceive_v or_o err_v but_o be_v these_o privilege_n therefore_o grant_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o to_o other_o bishop_n and_o what_o be_v the_o infallibility_n that_o this_o doctor_n resolve_v his_o faith_n into_o let_v it_o be_v observe_v whether_o it_o be_v near_o the_o miracle_n of_o knot_n or_o to_o the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o chillingworth_n pag._n 174_o 175._o he_o have_v these_o word_n statuendum_fw-la 20._o juxta_fw-la superius_fw-la stabilita_fw-la principia_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la soliditatem_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la seu_fw-la in_o fidei_fw-la divinae_fw-la &_o catholicae_fw-la in_o haerendi_fw-la certitudinem_fw-la &_o infallibilitatem_fw-la non_fw-la in_o privilegio_fw-la aliquo_fw-la aut_fw-la sedi_fw-la romanae_fw-la deo_fw-la authore_fw-la concesso_fw-la aut_fw-la s._n petri_n successori_fw-la pontifici_fw-la romano_n divinitus_fw-la impartilo_fw-it etc._n etc._n sed_fw-la universae_fw-la &_o catholicae_fw-la traditioni_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la speciali_fw-la dei_fw-la providentia_fw-la &_o christi_fw-la domini_fw-la promissis_fw-la fulcitae_fw-la praecipue_fw-la tribuendam_fw-la esse_fw-la &_o postea_fw-la deinde_fw-la catholicae_fw-la &_o universae_fw-la traditionis_fw-la rationem_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ommino_fw-la fidei_fw-la divinae_fw-la dogmatibus_fw-la pernecessariam_fw-la esse_fw-la traditioniis_fw-la vero_fw-la medium_n seu_fw-la testimonium_fw-la ade●_n publicum_fw-la universale_fw-la &_o apartum_fw-la esse_fw-la debere_fw-la ut_fw-la sensibus_fw-la ipsis_fw-la externis_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la omnibus_fw-la christianis_fw-la oporteat_fw-la constare_fw-la that_o be_v the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o certainty_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o in_o any_o privilege_n either_o grant_v by_o god_n as_o the_o author_n to_o the_o see_v of_o of_o rome_n or_o bestow_v from_o god_n on_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o saint_n peter_n successor_n but_o it_o be_v chief_o to_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o universal_a and_o catholic_a church_n uphold_v by_o the_o special_a providence_n of_o god_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o account_n of_o this_o catholic_a and_o universal_a tradition_n be_v most_o necessary_a to_o all_o point_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o the_o mean_n or_o testimony_n of_o this_o tradition_n must_v be_v so_o public_a universal_a and_o open_a that_o it_o must_v be_v manifest_a to_o all_o christian_n to_o their_o very_a outward_a sense_n i_o confess_v this_o doctor_n allow_v we_o pretty_a fair_a quarter_n in_o comparison_n of_o many_o other_o of_o his_o party_n if_o they_o will_v but_o give_v we_o such_o open_a public_a universal_a certain_a tradition_n which_o must_v be_v know_v to_o the_o very_a outward_a sense_n of_o every_o christian_a we_o shall_v be_v very_o ready_a to_o comply_v with_o they_o in_o receive_v such_o a_o testimony_n but_o if_o all_o the_o romish_a tradition_n have_v be_v such_o they_o will_v be_v know_v to_o all_o christian_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o not_o lock_v up_o in_o his_o cabinet_n and_o ourselves_o shall_v sure_o have_v know_v they_o before_o now_o if_o we_o be_v christian_n quest_n 5._o to_o proceed_v i_o be_o very_o desirous_a to_o know_v whether_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o present_a church_n pope_n or_o council_n or_o of_o those_o former_a that_o be_v dead_a and_o go_v that_o we_o must_v receive_v our_o faith_n and_o the_o scripture_n or_o upon_o both_o if_o it_o be_v on_o the_o credit_n of_o any_o former_a church_n then_o will_v i_o know_v of_o which_o age_n whether_o of_o the_o near_a or_o the_o middle_n or_o of_o the_o first_o and_o remote_a age_n that_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n if_o from_o the_o last_o age_n than_o 1._o how_o know_v we_o their_o testimony_n if_o it_o be_v by_o their_o write_n canon_n or_o decree_n why_o can_v other_o man_n who_o be_v much_o wise_a and_o better_a understand_v these_o as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n and_o why_o do_v they_o not_o refer_v we_o to_o those_o write_n but_o to_o their_o own_o determination_n if_o it_o be_v by_o the_o father_n tell_v the_o child_n what_o have_v former_o be_v believe_v then_o why_o can_v i_o tell_v what_o my_o father_n tell_v i_o without_o the_o pope_n and_o better_a than_o the_o pope_n that_o never_o know_v he_o 2._o and_o then_o it_o must_v be_v know_v upon_o who_o credit_n the_o former_a age_n do_v receive_v that_o faith_n and_o scripture_n which_o they_o deliver_v down_o to_o we_o doubtless_o they_o will_v say_v from_o their_o predecessor_n and_o they_o again_o from_o their_o predecessor_n and_o so_o up_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o why_o then_o may_v not_o we_o take_v it_o immediate_o on_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o the_o first_o age_n do_v suppose_v that_o we_o have_v the_o mediation_n of_o a_o sure_a hand_n to_o deliver_v to_o we_o their_o write_n without_o meditation_n of_o the_o like_a inspire_v prophetical_a person_n or_o of_o any_o privilege_a infallible_a judge_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o if_o it_o be_v on_o this_o testimony_n of_o former_a age_n that_o we_o must_v receive_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o shall_v then_o proceed_v further_a to_o demand_v quest_n 6._o why_o may_v not_o the_o greek_n abassine_n protestant_n etc._n etc._n that_o acknowledge_v not_o the_o pope_n authority_n or_o infallibility_n receive_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o the_o papist_n do_v they_o think_v that_o none_o else_o in_o the_o world_n but_o they_o can_v tell_v what_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o former_a church_n what_o record_n or_o tradition_n have_v they_o which_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n be_v ignorant_a of_o or_o dare_v they_o say_v if_o they_o have_v the_o face_n of_o christian_n that_o none_o of_o all_o the_o christian_n on_o earth_n but_o papist_n only_o have_v any_o sufficient_a evidence_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o deliver_v from_o they_o and_o that_o this_o be_v it_o which_o be_v now_o in_o the_o church_n can_v no_o man_n indeed_o but_o a_o papist_n know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n upon_o justifiable_a ground_n but_o if_o it_o be_v on_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o present_a church_n or_o both_o that_o we_o must_v take_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n than_o i_o shall_v further_o desire_v to_o be_v inform_v quest_n 7._o what_o be_v it_o which_o they_o call_v the_o present_a church_n be_v it_o 1._o the_o whole_a number_n of_o the_o faithful_a 2._o or_o a_o major_a vote_n or_o part_n 3._o or_o the_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n in_o whole_a or_o part_n 4._o or_o a_o council_n choose_v from_o among_o they_o 5._o or_o the_o pope_n if_o the_o first_o quest_n 8_o do_v they_o not_o then_o make_v all_o christian_n infallible_a as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n and_o so_o they_o be_v in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la in_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n shall_v never_o deny_v those_o essential_o but_o 1._o whole_a particular_a church_n may_v and_o 2._o the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v some_o small_a error_n against_o the_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o we_o know_v but_o in_o part_n and_o as_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o so_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o err_v all_o and_o moreover_o if_o this_o be_v their_o sense_n quest_n 9_o will_v it_o not_o then_o follow_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v prove_v infallible_a because_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o all_o the_o church_n do_v not_o take_v he_o to_o be_v infallible_a no_o nor_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n yea_o if_o they_o will_v take_v none_o for_o christian_n but_o papist_n yet_o it_o will_v hence_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n that_o either_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v infallible_a for_o the_o french_a take_v a_o pope_n to_o be_v fallible_a and_o the_o italian_n and_o other_o take_v a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v fallible_a and_o therefore_o the_o whole_a popish_a church_n be_v not_o agree_v of_o it_o we_o can_v be_v sure_a that_o either_o of_o they_o be_v infallible_a and_o moreover_o on_o this_o ground_n i_o demand_v quest_n 10._o how_o shall_v we_o know_v in_o very_a many_o case_n at_o least_o either_o which_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o of_o the_o major_a part_n what_o opportunity_n have_v we_o to_o take_v the_o account_n or_o can_v no_o poor_a christian_n believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o can_v take_v a_o account_n of_o this_o through_o the_o world_n the_o same_o question_n also_o i_o will_v put_v if_o they_o take_v all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o pastor_n for_o this_o church_n quest_n 11._o but_o if_o they_o take_v a_o general_n council_n for_o the_o church_n i_o will_v first_o know_v how_o we_o shall_v be_v sure_a that_o ever_o there_o have_v at_o least_o these_o
thousand_o year_n be_v ever_o a_o true_a general_n council_n in_o the_o world_n the_o popish_a doctor_n as_o doctor_n holden_n the_o resolut_a fid_fw-we li._n 1._o cap._n 9_o pag._n 156._o say_v that_o it_o must_v arise_v to_o that_o degree_n of_o universality_n that_o there_o may_v not_o be_v any_o suspicion_n of_o conspiracy_n and_o combine_a faction_n that_o so_o every_o prudent_a man_n may_v be_v able_a hearty_o to_o say_v that_o the_o assembly_n be_v true_o general_n and_o be_v it_o so_o when_o there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o swear_a oblige_a vassal_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o greek_n ethiopian_n protestant_n etc._n etc._n and_o most_o of_o the_o church_n be_v absent_a and_o when_o it_o be_v a_o know_a combination_n to_o promote_v their_o own_o espouse_a cause_n quest_n 12._o and_o then_o be_v the_o whole_a foundation_n of_o divine_a faith_n extinct_a and_o lose_v when_o there_o be_v no_o general_n council_n it_o may_v be_v we_o may_v have_v no_o general_n council_n of_o a_o hundred_o or_o six_o hundred_o or_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o have_v we_o no_o church_n then_o or_o no_o certainty_n of_o scripture_n or_o of_o the_o faith_n if_o they_o say_v that_o we_o be_v certain_a by_o the_o determination_n of_o former_a council_n than_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v past_a and_o go_v of_o which_o i_o move_v the_o doubt_n before_o and_o the_o canon_n of_o these_o we_o can_v read_v and_o understand_v as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n but_o when_o we_o appeal_v to_o former_a council_n and_o age_n they_o will_v hold_v we_o to_o the_o present_a church_n and_o that_o must_v be_v their_o own_o and_o so_o be_v sure_a to_o be_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n q._n 13_o i_o will_v know_v also_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o general_n council_n that_o the_o first_o church_n believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n do_v not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n believe_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n believe_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o so_o the_o rest_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o receive_v they_o by_o a_o undoubted_a messenger_n from_o paul_n or_o do_v they_o stay_v till_o they_o have_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o general_n council_n or_o of_o all_o the_o church_n indeed_o they_o make_v use_v of_o the_o intervening_a humane_a but_o certain_a testimony_n of_o he_o that_o be_v the_o messenger_n or_o bearer_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o writing_n of_o paul_n indeed_o and_o so_o we_o still_o maintain_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o credible_a humane_a testimony_n that_o these_o write_n come_v from_o the_o apostle_n hand_n but_o tychicus_n or_o trophimus_n or_o timothy_n or_o ones●mus_n be_v not_o a_o general_n council_n nor_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o doubtless_o those_o epistle_n that_o be_v write_v to_o each_o particular_a church_n be_v receive_v by_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o that_o particular_a church_n as_o have_v receive_v it_o from_o a_o apostle_n and_o not_o that_o the_o particular_a receive_v it_o from_o the_o universal_a how_o do_v the_o universal_a church_n know_v that_o those_o epistle_n be_v write_v by_o paul_n to_o titus_n timothy_n philemon_n to_o the_o ephesian_n etc._n etc._n but_o on_o the_o report_n of_o the_o person_n and_o church_n to_o who_o they_o be_v write_v or_o else_o of_o those_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n to_o who_o the_o apostle_n do_v communicate_v a_o copy_n of_o they_o quest_n 14._o and_o how_o do_v all_o the_o church_n know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a when_o there_o have_v be_v no_o general_n council_n to_o determine_v the_o business_n quest_n 15._o dare_v a_o papist_n undertake_v to_o justify_v at_o god_n judgement_n all_o that_o part_n of_o the_o unbelieve_a world_n for_o not_o take_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o have_v see_v or_o hear_v it_o and_o have_v all_o other_o testimony_n of_o it_o but_o never_o know_v of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n shall_v none_o of_o ●hese_n perish_v for_o this_o unbelief_n quest_n 16._o and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n that_o they_o call_v ●he_v church_n and_o take_v it_o to_o be_v this_o infallible_a judge_n ●_o then_o demand_n how_o know_v the_o pope_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n or_o that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v ●rue_a the_o like_a also_o i_o ask_v of_o a_o council_n how_o do_v that_o council_n know_v it_o themselves_o from_o who_o we_o must_v know_v it_o either_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n must_v believe_v it_o because_o they_o first_o believe_v themselves_o and_o so_o take_v it_o on_o their_o own_o word_n or_o else_o on_o the_o word_n of_o some_o other_o ●f_n the_o former_a than_o they_o believe_v it_o because_o they_o believe_v ●t_a then_o they_o be_v the_o original_n of_o their_o own_o belief_n and_o believe_v themselves_o first_o and_o then_o will_v have_v all_o the_o world_n to_o believe_v they_o and_o this_o be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v ●o_o arrogant_a as_o to_o be_v the_o god_n of_o themselves_o and_o the_o church_n but_o also_o so_o impudent_a and_o unreasonable_a as_o to_o believe_v themselves_o without_o reason_n and_o to_o expect_v that_o all_o other_o shall_v do_v so_o too_o but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o from_o themselves_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n believe_v the_o scripture_n from_o who_o then_o be_v it_o not_o from_o any_o other_o of_o the_o present_a church_n doubtless_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v from_o the_o former_a church_n and_o if_o so_o 1._o have_v not_o we_o the_o same_o mean_n to_o know_v that_o the_o former_a church_n believe_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o pope_n have_v and_o therefore_o may_v believe_v it_o without_o recourse_n to_o he_o and_o as_o infallible_o as_o he_o 2._o and_o then_o it_o seem_v that_o accord_v to_o their_o doctrine_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n receive_v not_o their_o faith_n or_o the_o scripture_n on_o the_o same_o ground_n as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n must_v do_v so_o that_o the_o church_n must_v have_v a_o twofold_a foundation_n of_o her_o faith_n whereof_o one_o be_v necessary_a only_o to_o one_o part_n and_o not_o to_o the_o other_o that_o be_v all_z the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n must_v believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n because_o the_o present_a pope_n or_o council_n say_v so_o have_v first_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n but_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n themselves_o need_v not_o any_o such_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o this_o distinction_n be_v not_o make_v between_o the_o laity_n and_o the_o clergy_n in_o general_a but_o even_o the_o clergy_n themselves_o out_o of_o council_n or_o who_o never_o be_v of_o the_o council_n which_o sure_o be_v more_o than_o a_o hundred_o for_o one_o must_v thu●_n differ_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n in_o the_o foundation_n of_o their_o faith_n this_o be_v another_o taste_n of_o the_o famous_a roman_a unity_n paul_n say_v there_o be_v one_o faith_n b●●_n if_o two_o divide_a foundation_n or_o reason_n of_o belie●_n do_v make_v two_o belief_n sure_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hat●_n two_o quest_n 17._o do_v you_o believe_v that_o the_o lord_n jes●_n christ_n understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o your_o papal_a authority_n and_o infallibility_n when_o he_o so_o chide_v his_o apostle_n fo●_n strive_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o tell_v they_o so_o express_o that_o the_o king_n of_o the_o gentile_n exercise_v authority_n over_o they_o and_o be_v call_v gracious_a lord_n but_o with_o you_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o and_o when_o he_o set_v before_o they_o a_o little_a child_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o that_o will_v be_v great_a among_o they_o must_v be_v as_o that_o child_n that_o be_v that_o humility_n be_v the_o thing_n that_o they_o must_v strive_v to_o be_v great_a or_o excel_v in_o and_o so_o to_o serve_v one_o another_o in_o love_n also_o when_o he_o command_v they_o to_o call_v no_o man_n on_o earth_n father_n or_o master_n that_o be_v of_o their_o faith_n do_v ever_o christ_n direct_v the_o world_n to_o go_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o know_v whether_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n or_o whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v his_o word_n or_o not_o quest_n 18._o where_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n when_o the_o pope_n be_v dead_a and_o when_o there_o be_v three_o or_o four_o at_o a_o time_n and_o when_o there_o be_v a_o interruption_n by_o schism_n thirty_o year_n together_o as_o it_o be_v know_v there_o have_v be_v have_v not_o the_o church_n then_o lose_v her_o faith_n by_o lose_v the_o foundation_n of_o it_o or_o
whether_o then_o must_v poor_a pagan_n have_v recourse_n to_o know_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o infallibility_n survive_v in_o other_o pastor_n than_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n only_o that_o be_v infallible_a but_o other_o as_o well_o as_o he_o and_o be_v not_o the_o church_n faith_n resolve_v into_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o woman_n in_o pope_n joane_v day_n i_o know_v the_o shift_n of_o bellarmine_n and_o onuphrius_n to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o the_o story_n of_o pope_n joan_n be_v but_o a_o fable_n florimondus_fw-la remondus_fw-la be_v common_a on_o this_o subject_n but_o the_o case_n be_v out_o of_o question_n thus_o far_o that_o we_o have_v near_o fifty_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n especial_o old_a historian_n that_o give_v we_o the_o history_n of_o this_o pope_n joan_n as_o platina_n in_o vit_fw-mi joh._n 8._o sabellicus_n enead_n l._n 1._o antoninus_n archbishop_n of_o florence_n part_n 2._o li._n 16._o chalcondyla_fw-fr li._n 6._o marianus_n scotus_n martinus_n polonus_n fasciculus_fw-la temporum_fw-la nauclerus_fw-la volaterane_n textor_n caryon_n sigebertus_n gemblacensis_fw-la mat._n palmerius_n massaeus_n etc._n etc._n and_o i_o marvel_v why_o the_o papist_n shall_v be_v so_o industrious_a in_o refel_v it_o as_o if_o their_o cause_n lie_v more_o on_o this_o then_o other_o thing_n if_o a_o conjurer_n a_o common_a whoremonger_n a_o murderer_n a_o simonist_n a_o heretic_n may_v be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n of_o the_o faith_n why_o may_v not_o a_o woman_n have_v christ_n lay_v more_o on_o the_o sex_n then_o on_o all_o these_o special_o if_o she_o have_v but_o keep_v herself_o honest_a i_o shall_v have_v think_v joan_n have_v be_v better_a than_o john_n the_o 22._o or_o 23._o and_o many_o another_o that_o yet_o be_v of_o the_o more_o worthy_a gender_n quest_n 19_o and_o further_o i_o will_v know_v if_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v consume_v with_o fire_n or_o the_o popedom_n remove_v from_o that_o sea_n which_o bellarmine_n confess_v it_o be_v not_o impossile_a to_o be_v do_v where_o then_o be_v the_o infallible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o what_o be_v become_v of_o the_o romish_a faith_n if_o they_o say_v that_o this_o can_v never_o be_v and_o that_o christ_n promise_n imply_v the_o preservation_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n i_o answer_v 1._o it_o will_v be_v long_o before_o they_o will_v give_v we_o any_o proof_n of_o that_o 2._o their_o own_o writer_n confess_v the_o contrary_n 3._o let_v the_o end_n determine_v it_o but_o if_o they_o say_v that_o infallibility_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o place_n but_o to_o the_o person_n who_o shall_v be_v peter_n successor_n i_o answer_v we_o think_v hitherto_o that_o to_o be_v peter_n successor_n and_o to_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v all_o one_o with_o they_o if_o another_o man_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v peter_n successor_n then_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v who_o have_v succeed_v he_o all_o this_o while_n why_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n jerusalem_n ephesus_n or_o other_o place_n as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n special_o why_o not_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n who_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o elder_a son_n of_o saint_n peter_n as_o inherit_v his_o first_o chair_n i_o doubt_v if_o rome_n be_v extinct_a and_o the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n or_o cullen_n or_o vienna_n or_o rheims_n or_o paris_n or_o any_o other_o shall_v pretend_v to_o be_v the_o infallible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o the_o old_a patriarch_n but_o their_o neighbour_n bishop_n will_v much_o contradict_v it_o and_o the_o world_n will_v be_v at_o a_o great_a loss_n to_o find_v the_o popish_a faith_n or_o infallible_a head_n quest_n 20._o last_o i_o will_v appeal_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o any_o papist_n that_o have_v any_o conscience_n leave_v and_o have_v read_v the_o father_n or_o history_n of_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o curche_n in_o those_o time_n do_v believe_v the_o scripture_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o gospel_n on_o the_o credit_n of_o peter_n or_o be_v they_o send_v by_o he_o or_o do_v they_o receive_v their_o authority_n from_o he_o do_v they_o find_v that_o ever_o the_o apostle_n or_o any_o follow_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n do_v take_v such_o a_o course_n to_o bring_v man_n to_o the_o faith_n as_o first_o to_o teach_v they_o that_o the_o roman_a pope_n or_o clergy_n be_v infallible_a and_o therefore_o to_o persuade_v they_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n or_o christian_a faith_n because_o they_o say_v its_o true_a be_v it_o possible_a that_o any_o learned_a papist_n can_v serious_o believe_v that_o this_o be_v the_o ancient_a way_n of_o believe_v do_v they_o think_v in_o good_a sadness_n that_o the_o world_n be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n by_o this_o mean_n sure_o it_o be_v scarce_o possible_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o distract_v by_o their_o prejudice_n and_o faction_n do_v they_o read_v in_o clemens_n rom._n or_o alexandrin_n in_o ignatius_n justin_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n origen_n cyprian_n or_o any_o other_o of_o those_o time_n that_o the_o preacher_n that_o go_v abroad_o the_o world_n to_o persuade_v man_n to_o christianity_n do_v ever_o use_v this_o popish_a medium_fw-la or_o go_v this_o way_n to_o work_v do_v they_o first_o preach_v the_o pope_n and_o roman_a church_n before_o they_o preach_v christ_n or_o scripture_n do_v they_o first_o preach_v man_n into_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o roman_a infallibility_n and_o then_o bring_v they_o to_o christ_n or_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o that_o o_o that_o these_o man_n will_v but_o show_v we_o in_o what_o history_n we_o may_v find_v the_o report_n of_o this_o way_n of_o preach_v or_o tell_v we_o what_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v convert_v by_o this_o argument_n how_o many_o and_o large_a oration_n apology_n and_o other_o discourse_n do_v we_o find_v in_o the_o father_n write_n for_o the_o christian_a faith_n to_o convince_v the_o unbelieving_a world_n in_o clem_n alexand._n tertullian_n origen_n athenagoras_n tatianus_n minutius_n faelix_fw-la arnobius_n lactantius_n greg_n nazianz._n nissen_n athanasius_n basil_n eusebius_n cyril_n alexandr_n augustine_n and_o many_o other_o and_o can_v any_o man_n of_o brain_n imagine_v that_o if_o the_o infallibility_n ●ea_n or_o but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n or_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v know_v before_o we_o can_v believe_v the_o scripture_n or_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o that_o it_o must_v be_v receive_v upon_o the_o credit_n of_o that_o church_n that_o all_o these_o father_n and_o other_o defender_n and_o propagator_n of_o the_o faith_n will_v have_v quite_o forget_v and_o leave_v out_o this_o great_a and_o necessary_a point_n what!_o will_v all_o the_o preacher_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n overlook_v and_o omit_v the_o very_a foundation_n into_o which_o all_o man_n faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v undoubted_o if_o this_o have_v be_v then_o think_v to_o be_v true_a which_o the_o papist_n now_o teach_v we_o shall_v have_v have_v the_o first_o part_n and_o a_o great_a if_o not_o the_o great_a part_n of_o all_o tho●e_a apology_n and_o discourse_n lay_v out_o in_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o roman_a infallibility_n what_o man_n will_v go_v to_o evince_v a_o whole_a system_a of_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a and_o quite_o forget_v that_o medium_n by_o which_o only_o it_o be_v first_o to_o be_v prove_v will_v not_o this_o have_v find_v one_o place_n at_o least_o if_o not_o the_o chief_a among_o eusebius_n his_o preparation_n or_o demonstration_n where_o be_v there_o ever_o in_o all_o antiquity_n find_v such_o a_o argument_n as_o this_o to_o convince_v a_o unbeliever_n whatsoever_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n determine_v be_v true_a but_o they_o do_v determine_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o christianity_n be_v the_o right_a religion_n therefore_o this_o be_v true_a nay_o further_o consider_v if_o this_o kind_n of_o argue_v have_v be_v then_o use_v may_v not_o any_o man_n see_v that_o have_v not_o renounce_v his_o wit_n that_o the_o heathen_n will_v have_v sore_o stick_v at_o the_o major_a proposition_n and_o that_o it_o will_v have_v meet_v with_o so_o many_o objection_n and_o contradiction_n from_o they_o that_o sure_o we_o shall_v have_v find_v some_o of_o they_o remember_v to_o posterity_n do_v julian_n never_o stick_v at_o this_o very_a principle_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o roman_a infallibility_n who_o stick_v at_o so_o many_o thing_n in_o the_o faith_n itself_o or_o have_v cyril_n alexandr_n and_o other_o quite_o forget_v to_o mention_v these_o among_o the_o rest_n
have_v small_a reason_n to_o hear_v we_o or_o regard_v we_o or_o to_o trust_v their_o salvation_n on_o the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o deliver_v to_o they_o see_v for_o aught_o we_o know_v or_o they_o know_v we_o may_v but_o deceive_v they_o as_o be_v first_o ourselves_o deceive_v so_o that_o this_o make_v way_n to_o infidelity_n or_o uncertainty_n of_o the_o faith_n if_o the_o church_n be_v not_o infallible_a this_o be_v their_o all_o the_o first_o and_o last_o for_o aught_o i_o can_v find_v that_o be_v worth_n the_o repeat_n and_o of_o how_o little_a value_n this_o argue_v be_v i_o think_v shall_v be_v very_o easy_a to_o apprehend_v 1._o look_v back_o to_o the_o state_v of_o the_o question_n and_o remember_v how_o far_o we_o say_v the_o church_n be_v fallible_a and_o how_o far_o infallible_a and_o it_o may_v suffice_v to_o confute_v all_o this_o 2._o it_o be_v not_o all_o one_o to_o be_v absolute_o infallible_a and_o to_o be_v actual_o not-mistaken_a nor_o to_o be_v certain_a of_o some_o thing_n and_o to_o be_v certain_a of_o all_o thing_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v know_v or_o believe_v nor_o to_o be_v certain_a by_o such_o external_a evidence_n of_o verity_n and_o internal_a grace_n as_o be_v ordinary_a to_o the_o faithful_a and_o to_o be_v certain_a by_o a_o pretend_a privilege_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n even_o know_v the_o conclusion_n as_o such_o without_o know_v the_o medium_n we_o be_v certain_a that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n and_o certain_a that_o we_o be_v certain_a and_o therefore_o pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la infallible_o certain_a and_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o we_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o true_a believer_n shall_v ever_o fall_v from_o this_o certainty_n we_o shall_v speak_v more_o agreeable_o to_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n then_o to_o you_o who_o say_v that_o they_o may_v fall_v away_o and_o we_o maintain_v that_o there_o be_v still_o a_o objective_n certain_o or_o infallibility_n if_o i_o may_v use_v the_o word_n active_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o every_o sentence_n of_o it_o which_o can_v never_o fail_v if_o our_o faith_n shall_v fail_v and_o we_o can_v manifest_v to_o our_o hearer_n such_o ground_n of_o their_o belief_n as_o be_v infallible_a and_o will_v never_o deceive_v those_o that_o trust_v in_o they_o your_o argument_n therefore_o most_o vain_o suppose_v that_o man_n sai_z must_v be_v ground_v on_o the_o word_n and_o credit_n of_o their_o teacher_n and_o that_o therefore_o they_o can_v have_v no_o strong_a a_o faith_n then_o be_v answerable_a to_o our_o credit_n with_o they_o but_o it_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n it_o be_v god_n veracity_n and_o not_o we_o that_o be_v the_o formal_a object_n of_o the_o hearer_n faith_n we_o do_v not_o desire_v as_o it_o seem_v the_o papist_n do_v that_o they_o shall_v take_v their_o faith_n on_o trust_n from_o we_o and_o believe_v all_o on_o our_o word_n we_o do_v but_o reveal_v to_o they_o that_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o we_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o show_v they_o that_o in_o it_o which_o will_v prove_v itself_o to_o be_v so_o so_o that_o as_o long_o as_o our_o reason_n proof_n evidence_n be_v infallible_a what_o necessity_n be_v there_o that_o the_o speaker_n must_v be_v infallible_a and_o that_o in_o every_o thing_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v believe_v be_v all_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o romish_a faction_n infallible_a you_o will_v say_v no_o yourselves_o must_v they_o not_o therefore_o be_v hear_v or_o may_v not_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o preach_v beget_v a_o certain_a belief_n in_o the_o hearer_n you_o will_v i_o know_v with_o one_o voice_n say_v that_o i_o may_v and_o do_v how_o then_o do_v fallible_a man_n among_o you_o by_o preach_v bring_v man_n to_o a_o infallible_a faith_n in_o tant●m_fw-la and_o why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v so_o with_o we_o will_v you_o say_v that_o you_o preach_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v infallible_a why_o but_o how_o do_v your_o hearer_n know_v that_o must_v they_o take_v it_o on_o the_o preacher_n word_n who_o proclaim_v himself_o fallible_a why_o then_o may_v they_o not_o as_o well_o take_v it_o on_o our_o word_n that_o christ_n and_o scripture_n be_v infallible_a when_o we_o say_v we_o preach_v in_o christ_n name_n as_o confident_o as_o you_o say_v that_o you_o preach_v in_o the_o pope_n name_n and_o so_o your_o doctrine_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v both_o uncertain_a if_o both_o rest_v on_o the_o fallible_a preacher_n word_n but_o if_o you_o will_v not_o bid_v your_o hearer_n take_v your_o word_n but_o will_v undertake_v to_o demonstrate_v to_o thtm_v by_o cogent_a evidence_n that_o you_o be_v send_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o be_v infallible_a and_o that_o you_o speak_v nothing_o but_o what_o he_o infallible_o warrant_v you_o to_o speak_v all_o which_o will_v be_v incumbent_a on_o you_o to_o prove_v then_o will_v we_o much_o more_o easy_o and_o true_o prove_v that_o god_n be_v true_a and_o that_o scripture_n be_v his_o word_n which_o be_v all_o that_o be_v incumbent_n on_o we_o to_o prove_v see_v a_o infallible_a word_n of_o a_o infallible_a god_n must_v be_v hear_v how_o fallible_a soever_o we_o may_v be_v so_o that_o you_o may_v easy_o see_v if_o you_o will_v that_o your_o task_n be_v incomparable_o hard_a than_o we_o even_o as_o much_o as_o to_o prove_v a_o falsehood_n be_v hard_a than_o to_o prove_v a_o truth_n how_o will_v you_o approve_v of_o such_o reason_n as_o your_o own_o in_o other_o case_n what_o if_o ten_o man_n that_o have_v be_v at_o a_o fight_n come_v home_o and_o tell_v you_o which_o side_n have_v the_o better_a though_o they_o be_v all_o fallible_a may_v they_o not_o possible_o give_v you_o such_o infallible_a proof_n of_o what_o they_o say_v as_o may_v make_v it_o certain_a what_o if_o all_o the_o lawyer_n in_o the_o land_n be_v fallible_a man_n yea_o and_o all_o other_o man_n in_o the_o land_n and_o do_v not_o know_v all_o thing_n nor_o all_o that_o shall_v be_v know_v about_o the_o law_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o these_o fallible_a man_n may_v not_o infallible_o know_v themselves_o and_o infallible_o prove_v to_o other_o even_o by_o certain_a humane_a testimony_n uncapable_a of_o deceit_n that_o this_o or_o that_o be_v indeed_o a_o statute_n law_n of_o the_o land_n make_v by_o king_n and_o parliament_n do_v all_o man_n hold_v their_o land_n and_o life_n by_o law_n and_o so_o many_o dye_n at_o the_o gallow_n by_o law_n and_o yet_o be_v it_o uncertain_a whether_o they_o be_v the_o law_n indeed_o or_o not_o and_o all_o because_o the_o man_n that_o say_v so_o be_v not_o infallible_a and_o all_o be_v dead_a that_o see_v they_o make_v why_o but_o a_o man_n may_v be_v certain_a of_o many_o a_o thing_n that_o yet_o be_v not_o infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n nor_o in_o all_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o know_v your_o argument_n therefore_o be_v strong_a against_o yourselves_o who_o resolve_v man_n say_v into_o humane_a credit_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o against_o we_o who_o resolve_v it_o into_o god_n veracity_n and_o teach_v not_o man_n to_o take_v all_o upon_o trust_n from_o our_o bare_a word_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o god_n be_v infallible_a when_o we_o persuade_v they_o to_o believe_v and_o that_o we_o can_v infallible_o prove_v to_o they_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n and_o what_o it_o contain_v in_o the_o point_n of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n we_o can_v without_o infallibility_n in_o all_o other_o matter_n infallible_o prove_v to_o they_o what_o god_n require_v they_o to_o believe_v and_o do_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n it_o be_v the_o infallibility_n of_o our_o proof_n and_o not_o of_o our_o bare_a word_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o man_n belief_n but_o the_o papist_n expect_v their_o mislead_a flock_n shall_v take_v their_o bare_a word_n and_o so_o make_v the_o faith_n of_o their_o follower_n a_o humane_a faith_n and_o to_o blind_v the_o business_n they_o pretend_v to_o a_o certain_a infallibility_n as_o if_o their_o say_n be_v divine_a man_n will_v make_v use_n of_o physician_n for_o their_o body_n though_o they_o be_v not_o infallible_a much_o more_o may_v they_o do_v it_o with_o encouragement_n if_o they_o can_v infallible_o tell_v they_o the_o true_a cure_n of_o every_o mortal_a disease_n though_o there_o be_v a_o hundred_o small_a disease_n that_o they_o can_v not_o cure_v or_o a_o hundred_o question_n in_o anatomy_n and_o about_o the_o nature_n of_o disease_n which_o they_o can_v not_o resolve_v why_o then_o shall_v man_n conceit_n that_o the_o ministry_n be_v vain_a that_o be_v not_o infallible_a and_o know_v not_o all_o thing_n have_v god_n church_n be_v without_o infallible_a ordinary_a guide_n from_o
the_o creation_n to_o this_o day_n and_o we_o must_v now_o begin_v to_o feign_v a_o necessity_n of_o their_o infallibility_n let_v it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o god_n and_o the_o extraordinary_o inspire_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v infallible_a and_o that_o we_o have_v teacher_n that_o can_v infallible_o prove_v to_o we_o what_o he_o require_v of_o we_o in_o his_o word_n in_o point_n of_o necessity_n to_o our_o everlasting_a happiness_n and_o for_o themselves_o pretend_v to_o infallibility_n make_v they_o not_o nor_o procure_v they_o infallible_a whereas_o their_o voluminous_a error_n and_o the_o wicked_a practice_n ground_v thereupon_o and_o their_o frequent_a self-contradiction_n and_o mutation_n do_v proclaim_v aloud_o to_o the_o world_n that_o they_o be_v both_o deceivable_a deceive_v and_o deceiver_n while_o the_o holy_a scripture_n who_o sufficiency_n they_o deny_v be_v by_o themselves_o confess_v to_o be_v of_o infallible_a verity_n we_o be_v resolve_v therefore_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o a_o business_n of_o such_o moment_n as_o the_o everlasting_a save_n or_o lose_v of_o our_o soul_n to_o venture_v and_o bottom_n all_o our_o hope_n on_o that_o word_n of_o god_n who_o infallibility_n they_o confess_v then_o on_o the_o word●_n of_o man_n who_o pretend_v to_o infallibility_n and_o notorious_o declare_v the_o vainty_a of_o those_o pretence_n some_o more_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o antiquity_n in_o the_o main_a controversy_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n to_o declare_v further_a who_o it_o be_v that_o be_v of_o the_o new_a religion_n cyrill_n hierosol_n cateche_n 4._o sect._n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la pag._n edit_n paris_n 1631._o 30._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n i._n e._n for_o concern_v divine_a thing_n and_o the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o faith_n nothing_o no_o not_o the_o small_a thing_n ought_v to_o be_v deliver_v without_o the_o divine_a scripture_n nor_o to_o be_v bring_v forth_o by_o simple_a probability_n plain_a nor_o by_o a_o train_n of_o word_n nay_o do_v not_o simple_o believe_v i_o myself_o when_o i_o speak_v of_o these_o thing_n to_o thou_o unless_o thou_o receive_v a_o demonstration_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o i_o speak_v from_o the_o divine_a scripture_n for_o the_o very_a safety_n of_o our_o faith_n rest_v not_o on_o the_o elegancy_n of_o speech_n but_o on_o the_o proof_n of_o divine_a scripture_n and_o pag._n 36._o sect_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la script_n he_o tell_v you_o what_o scripture_n he_o mean_v earnest_o dissuade_v from_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n and_o number_v the_o same_o only_o which_o we_o own_v as_o canonical_a save_v that_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o omit_v the_o epist_n to_o hebrew_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n and_o cateche_n 17._o pag._n 192._o he_o say_v and_o we_o now_o also_o ingenious_o confess_v that_o we_o will_v not_o use_v humane_a reason_n but_o will_v only_o commemorate_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o this_o be_v most_o safe_a as_o saint_n paul_n 1._o cor._n 2.4_o and_o cateche_n 18._o pag._n 220_o 221_o 222._o see_v how_o he_o describe_v the_o catholic_a church_n without_o the_o least_o intimation_n of_o the_o roman_a description_n august_n cont._n literas_fw-la petiliani_fw-la li._n 3._o cap._n 6._o pag._n edit_n paris_n 127._o col_fw-fr 1._o proinde_fw-la sive_fw-la de_fw-la christo_fw-la sive_fw-la de_fw-la ejus_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sive_fw-la de_fw-la quacunque_fw-la alia_fw-la re_fw-la quae_fw-la pertinet_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la utramque_fw-la nostram_fw-la hatred_n non_fw-la dicam_fw-la nos_fw-la nequaquam_fw-la comparandi_fw-la ei_fw-la qui_fw-la dixit_fw-la licet_fw-la si_fw-la nos_fw-la sed_fw-la omnino_fw-la quod_fw-la secutus_fw-la adjecit_fw-la si_fw-mi angelus_n de_fw-la caelum_fw-la vobis_fw-la annunciaverit_fw-la preterquam_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o scripture_n legalibus_fw-la &_o evangelicis_fw-la accepistis_fw-la anathema_n sit_v church_n hac_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la quos_fw-la christo_fw-la lucrati_fw-la cupimus_fw-la actitante_n atque_fw-la inter_fw-la cetera_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o dei_fw-la lieris_fw-la promissam_fw-la legimus_fw-la &_o sicut_fw-la promissa_fw-la est_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la g●ntibus_fw-la reddi_fw-la cernimus_fw-la praedicantes_fw-la ab_fw-la iis_fw-la quos_fw-la ad_fw-la ejus_fw-la pacificum_fw-la gremium_fw-la attrahi_fw-la cupimus_fw-la pro_fw-la actione_n gratiarum_fw-la flammas_fw-la meruinnus_fw-la odiorum_fw-la that_o be_v moreover_o whether_o it_o be_v of_o christ_n or_o of_o his_o church_n or_o of_o any_o other_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o our_o faith_n and_o life_n i_o say_v not_o if_o we_o who_o be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v to_o he_o who_o say_v though_o we_o but_o that_o which_o he_o next_o add_v if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v to_o you_o any_o other_o thing_n then_o that_o which_o you_o have_v receive_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v while_o we_o deal_v thus_o with_o you_o and_o with_o all_o man_n who_o we_o desire_v to_o win_v to_o christ_n and_o among_o other_o thing_n do_v preach_v the_o holy_a church_n which_o we_o find_v promise_v in_o god_n scripture_n and_o which_o we_o see_v to_o be_v place_v in_o all_o nation_n as_o be_v promise_v we_o have_v deserve_v or_o procure_v the_o flame_n of_o hatred_n from_o those_o who_o we_o desire_v to_o draw_v into_o its_o pacifike_n bosom_n in_o stead_n of_o thanks_o and_o he_o proceed_v as_o if_o it_o be_v we_o that_o so_o long_o before_o have_v bid_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o put_v in_o their_o book_n any_o testimony_n by_o which_o the_o faction_n or_o party_n of_o donatus_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o epistle_n ad_fw-la demetriadem_n common_o reckon_v the_o 142._o among_o augustine_n cap._n 9_o say_v scito_fw-la itaque_fw-la in_o scripture_n divinis_fw-la per_fw-la quas_fw-la solas_fw-la potes_fw-la plenam_fw-la dei_fw-la intelligere_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la etc._n etc._n by_o the_o divine_a scripture_n alone_o thou_o may_v understand_v the_o full_a will_n of_o god_n i_o know_v the_o louvain_n doctor_n put_v this_o epistle_n in_o the_o appendix_n and_o conjecture_v it_o to_o be_v of_o pelagius_n but_o 1._o it_o show_v the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o age_n 2._o never_o do_v austin_n contradict_v it_o but_o oft_o say_v the_o like_a august_n de_fw-fr peccat_fw-la merit_n &_o remiss_a li._n 2._o cap._n 36._o pag._n mihi_fw-la 304._o say_v talis_fw-la populus_fw-la ut_fw-la praedixi_fw-la eruditus_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la caelorum_fw-la per_fw-la duo_fw-la testamenta_fw-la vetus_fw-la &_o novum_fw-la non_fw-la declinans_fw-la in_o dextram_fw-la superba_fw-la presumtione_fw-la justitiae_fw-la neque_fw-la in_o sinistram_fw-la secuva_fw-fr delectatione_n peccati_fw-la in_fw-la terram_fw-la illius_fw-la promissionis_fw-la intrabit_fw-la &_o postea_fw-la vbi_fw-la enim_fw-la de_fw-la re_fw-la obscurissima_fw-la disputatur_fw-la non_fw-la adjuvantibus_fw-la divinarum_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la certis_fw-la clarisque_fw-la documentis_fw-la cohibere_fw-la se_fw-la deb●t_fw-la humana_fw-la presumptio_fw-la nihil_fw-la faciens_fw-la in_o partem_fw-la alteram_fw-la declinando_fw-la so_o that_o in_o austius_n judgement_n the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n teach_v we_o enough_o to_o salvation_n and_o in_o the_o difficult_a point_n we_o must_v not_o so_o much_o as_o incline_v to_o either_o side_n without_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v presumption_n to_o speak_v when_o they_o be_v silent_a and_o in_o his_o 49._o tract_n on_o john_n he_o say_v evangelista_n testatur_fw-la multa_fw-la dominum_fw-la christum_fw-la &_o dixisse_fw-la &_o fecisse_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la scripta_fw-la sunt_fw-la electa_fw-la sunt_fw-la autem_fw-la quae_fw-la scriberentur_fw-la quae_fw-la saluti_fw-la credentium_fw-la sufficere_fw-la videbantur_fw-la i._n e._n the_o evangelist_n testify_v that_o the_o lord_n christ_n speak_v and_o do_v many_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o write_v but_o those_o be_v choose_v to_o be_v write_v which_o seem_v sufficient_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o believer_n and_o li._n de_fw-fr nat._n grat_n c._n 26._o he_o say_v to_o the_o pelagian_n solis_fw-la canonicis_fw-la debeo_fw-la sine_fw-la ●ulla_fw-la recusatione_fw-la consensum_fw-la that_o be_v i_o owe_v a_o consent_n without_o any_o refusal_n to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n alone_o a_o hundred_o more_o such_o saying_n may_v be_v cite_v out_o of_o augustine_n hierom_n on_o the_o first_o ch._n of_o hag._n fol_n mihi_fw-la 102._o speak_v of_o the_o use_n of_o heretic_n say_v sed_fw-la &_o alia_fw-la quae_fw-la absque_fw-la authoritate_fw-la &_o testimoniis_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la quasi_fw-la traditione_n apostolica_fw-la sponte_fw-la reperiunt_fw-la atque_fw-la confingunt_fw-la percutit_fw-la gladius_fw-la dei_fw-la popish_a i._n e._n but_o other_o thing_n which_o without_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n they_o do_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n find_v out_o and_o feign_v as_o of_o apostolical_a tradition_n the_o sword_n of_o god_n will_v cut_v down_o and_o he_o instance_v in_o the_o fasting_n and_o other_o austerity_n of_o the_o tatiani_n which_o he_o say_v they_o suffer_v causeless_o the_o same_o hierom_n against_o helvidius_n say_v ut_fw-la haec_fw-la quae_fw-la
quod_fw-la coram_fw-la omnibus_fw-la just_a vivre_fw-fr &_o bene_fw-la omne_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la credant_fw-la &_o omnes_fw-la articules_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o symbolo_fw-la continentur_fw-la solummodo_fw-la romanam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la blasphemant_fw-la et_fw-la clerum_fw-la that_o be_v among_o all_o the_o sect_n that_o yet_o be_v and_o have_v be_v there_o be_v not_o a_o more_o pernicious_a to_o the_o church_n then_o that_o of_o the_o lyonist_n and_o that_o for_o three_o cause_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v the_o more_o 〈◊〉_d or_o of_o long_a continuance_n for_o some_o 〈◊〉_d it_o have_v endure_v from_o the_o time_n of_o silvester_n other_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o because_o it_o be_v more_o general_a for_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o land_n in_o which_o this_o ●ect_n ●s_v not_o 3._o because_o when_o all_o other_o sect_n do_v by_o the_o immanity_n of_o their_o blasphemy_n bring_v horror_n into_o the_o hearer_n this_o of_o the_o lyonist_n have_v a_o great_a show_n of_o godliness_n in_o that_o they_o live_v righteous_o before_o all_o man_n and_o they_o believe_v all_o thing_n well_o concern_v god_n and_o all_o the_o article_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o creed_n only_o they_o blaspheme_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o clergy_n to_o this_o add_v what_o i_o cite_v out_o of_o canus_n and_o other_o before_o last_o give_v we_o some_o tolerable_a answer_n to_o all_o that_o voluminous_a evidence_n of_o your_o opposition_n by_o prince_n prelate_n divine_n and_o lawyer_n which_o mich._n goldastus_n have_v collect_v and_o publish_v on_o his_o volume_n the_o monarch_n &_o constitut_v imperial_a appendix_n a_o translation_n of_o bishop_n downame_n catalogue_n of_o popish_a error_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la antichristo_fw-la cap._n 7._o to_o satisfy_v the_o earnest_a desire_n of_o some_o of_o the_o unlearned_a who_o will_v fain_o know_v wherein_o the_o papist_n differ_v from_o we_o that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o better_o furnish_v against_o they_o and_o may_v the_o better_o understand_v those_o that_o under_o other_o title_n carry_v about_o their_o doctrine_n because_o i_o find_v many_o ignorant_a person_n both_o unacquainted_a with_o the_o error_n of_o the_o papist_n plain_a and_o yet_o very_o desirous_a to_o know_v they_o i_o have_v adventure_v to_o translate_v a_o large_a catalogue_n of_o they_o gather_v by_o bishop_n george_n downame_n in_o his_o book_n write_v to_o prove_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 7._o pag._n 189._o etc._n etc._n though_o it_o can_v be_v expect_v that_o in_o such_o brief_a expression_n the_o true_a point_n of_o the_o difference_n shall_v in_o all_o lie_n plain_a before_o they_o that_o be_v unacquainted_a with_o the_o controversy_n yet_o because_o i_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o give_v you_o any_o such_o catalogue_n of_o my_o own_o gather_n and_o know_v not_o where_o to_o find_v one_o so_o large_a as_o to_o the_o number_n of_o error_n and_o brief_a as_o to_o the_o expression_n i_o give_v you_o this_o as_o i_o find_v it_o bishop_n g.d._n chap._n 7._o a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o error_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v either_o about_o the_o principle_n of_o divinity_n or_o the_o part_n of_o it_o the_o principle_n of_o theology_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n here_o the_o papist_n have_v many_o error_n 1._o they_o deny_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v of_o divine_a inspiration_n to_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n and_o foundation_n truth_n of_o faith_n 2._o they_o take_v certain_a apocryphal_a book_n into_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o neither_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n to_o which_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n be_v commit_v nor_o yet_o the_o pure_a christian_a church_n do_v receive_v fabric_n 3._o they_o make_v two_o part_n of_o god_n word_n that_o be_v the_o scripture_n and_o their_o own_o tradition_n 4._o they_o contend_v that_o the_o custom_n and_o unwritten_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v most_o certain_a apostolical_a tradition_n 5._o these_o tradition_n or_o as_o they_o call_v they_o unwritten_a verity_n they_o make_v equal_a with_o the_o holy_a scriture_n and_o receive_v and_o reverence_v they_o with_o equal_a pious_a affection_n and_o reverence_n 6._o they_o number_v the_o pope_n decretal_a epistle_n with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n clementines_n stature_n 7._o they_o say_v its_o heresy_n for_o any_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o altogether_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n or_o pope_n to_o appoint_v article_n of_o faith_n we_o 8._o they_o prefer_v the_o faith_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o they_o say_v be_v the_o internal_a scripture_n write_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n in_o heart_n of_o the_o church_n b●fore_o the_o holy_a scripture_n judgement_n 9_o that_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o god_n himself_o speak_v be_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o judge_n but_o the_o matter_n of_o strife_n 10._o life_n they_o accuse_v the_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o light_n to_o our_o foot_n and_o giveth_z understanding_n to_o child_n of_o too_o much_o obscurity_n 11._o error_n they_o condemn_v it_o also_o of_o imperfection_n and_o insufficiency_n 12._o they_o say_v that_o even_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n we_o can_v argue_v negative_o from_o scripture_n as_o thus_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a or_o lawful_a 13._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o the_o refute_v of_o all_o heresy_n as_o if_o there_o be_v any_o heresy_n but_o what_o be_v against_o scripture_n 14._o that_o heresy_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v define_v by_o the_o scripture_n authority_n as_o by_o the_o church_n determination_n 15._o foundation_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v the_o roman_a be_v great_a ●en_n of_o the_o scripture_n ●nd_v the_o pope_n authority_n great_a than_o the_o church_n 16._o member_n that_o the_o church_n be_v ancient_a than_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v than_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v now_o write_v because_o it_o be_v ancient_a than_o the_o writing_n of_o it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v first_o deliver_v by_o voice_n that_o be_v now_o then_o in_o writing_n etc._n 17._o that_o the_o scripture_n depend_v on_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v the_o roman_a and_o not_o the_o church_n on_o the_o scripture_n arrogancy_n 18._o also_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o as_o it_o be_v expound_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 19_o they_o make_v seven_o principle_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n which_o be_v all_o ground_a in_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v and_o pope_n of_o rome_n they_o 20._o they_o take_v the_o vulg●_fw-la translation_n only_o for_o authentical_a prefer_n it_o before_o the_o original_n though_o it_o be_v so_o manifest_o corrupt_v that_o the_o copy_n late_o publish_v by_o the_o pope_n themselves_o sixtus_n the_o five_o and_o clement_n the_o eight_o do_v in_o many_o place_n differ_v 21._o principle_n that_o either_o the_o holy_a scripture_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v translate_v into_o vulgar_a tongue_n or_o if_o it_o be_v yet_o it_o must_v neither_o be_v public_o read_v in_o a_o know_a tongue_n nor_o permit_v to_o be_v private_o read_v by_o the_o common_a people_n §_o 2._o of_o the_o belief_n the_o part_n of_o theology_n be_v 1._o of_o faith_n or_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v 2._o of_o charity_n or_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v 1._o of_o god_n &_o his_o work_n 2._o of_o the_o church_n the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v special_o 1._o of_o creation_n and_o government_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o of_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n 1._o god_n about_o the_o creation_n the_o papist_n err_v in_o say_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v then_o natural_a to_o man_n though_o john_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n 1_o jo._n 2.16_o and_o themselves_o sometime_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v evil_a and_o contrary_a to_o nature_n controversy_n 2._o in_o the_o deny_v that_o original_a righteousness_n be_v natural_a to_o man_n before_o the_o fall_n create_v after_o god_n image_n in_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n sin_n 3._o in_o affirm_v that_o mortality_n be_v natural_a to_o man_n before_o the_o fall_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o from_o god_n the_o author_n of_o nature_n apostolical_a 4._o in_o place_v paradise_n where_o the_o water_n of_o the_o flood_n do_v not_o reach_v it_o which_o yet_o cover_v all_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v fifteen_o cubit_n high_o than_o the_o high_a mountain_n 5._o forsooth_o they_o will_v have_v that_o paradise_n or_o eden_n yet_o untouched_a that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o pleasant_a habitatian_n to_o henoch_v and_o elias_n
2._o either_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v one_o or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o popery_n be_v deceitful_a which_o make_v this_o its_o principal_a pretence_n for_o the_o usurp_a the_o universal_a headship_n if_o it_o be_v one_o than_o popery_n be_v deceitful_a which_o be_v renounce_v by_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o again_o renounce_v they_o and_o separate_v from_o they_o because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n who_o never_o yet_o in_o his_o great_a height_n have_v the_o actual_a government_n of_o half_a the_o christian_a world_n 3._o either_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n be_v sound_a or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v unsound_a that_o be_v swear_v to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n only_o according_a to_o their_o consent_n if_o it_o be_v sound_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v unsound_a that_o arrogate_v a_o uiniversal_a government_n and_o infallibility_n and_o build_v upon_o a_o foundation_n that_o be_v never_o allow_v by_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n as_o in_o the_o three_o disput_n i_o have_v full_o prove_v and_o which_o most_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n do_v still_o reject_v 4._o either_o reason_n itself_o be_v to_o be_v renounce_v or_o not_o if_o it_o be_v than_o none_o can_v be_v papist_n but_o mad_a man_n if_o not_o than_o popery_n must_v be_v renounce_v which_o found_v our_o very_a faith_n upon_o impossibility_n and_o teach_v man_n of_o necessity_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n before_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n with_o many_o the_o like_o which_o be_v afterward_o lay_v open_a 5._o either_o our_o five_o sense_n and_o the_o judgement_n make_v upon_o they_o be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n both_o pope_n and_o council_n be_v fallible_a and_o not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v t●●●●ed_v for_o when_o all_o their_o tradition_n be_v by_o hear_v or_o read_v they_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o ever_o they_o hear_v or_o read_v any_o such_o thing_n and_o we_o must_v all_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o they_o speak_v or_o write_v it_o and_o then_o we_o must_v not_o only_o subscribe_v to_o fransc_n sanchez_n quod_fw-la nihil_fw-la scitur_fw-la but_o also_o say_v that_o nihil_fw-la certo_fw-la creditur_fw-la but_o if_o sense_n be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n even_o pope_n and_o council_n be_v not_o only_o fallible_a but_o certain_o false_a deceiver_n and_o deceive_v for_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n tell_v the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v not_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o they_o take_v eat_v and_o drink_v in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o sound_a man_n do_v tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v i_o see_v that_o its_o bread_n and_o wine_n i_o smell_v it_o i_o feel_v it_o i_o taste_v it_o and_o somewhat_o i_o hear_v to_o further_a my_o assurance_n and_o yet_o if_o popery_n be_v not_o false_a it_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n one_o will_v think_v the_o dull_a reader_n may_v be_v quick_o here_o resolve_v whether_o popery_n be_v true_a or_o false_a look_v on_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n and_o wine_n touch_v it_o smell_v it_o taste_v it_o and_o if_o thou_o can_v but_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o be_v indeed_o bread_n and_o wine_n thou_o may_v be_v as_o sure_a that_o popery_n be_v a_o delusion_n and_o if_o thou_o can_v but_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o be_v not_o bread_n and_o wine_n yet_o thou_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o council_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o doctor_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v for_o if_o other_o man_n sense_n be_v deceitful_a they_o and_o thou_o be_v so_o too_o but_o these_o thing_n be_v urge_v in_o the_o follow_a disputation_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o observe_v how_o much_o they_o be_v at_o odds_o among_o themselves_o about_o the_o resolution_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o how_o near_o some_o of_o they_o come_v to_o we_o of_o late_a as_o in_o white_n be_v sonus_n buccinae_fw-la and_o doctor_n h._n holden_n de_fw-fr resol_n fidei_fw-la and_o in_o cressy_n and_o vane_n and_o other_o may_v be_v see_v and_o their_o silly_a follower_n in_o england_n think_v very_o that_o they_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n and_o how_o solicitous_a cressy_n and_o other_o be_v to_o take_v that_o infallibility_n out_o of_o our_o way_n as_o a_o stumble_a stone_n which_o the_o italian_n and_o most_o of_o they_o make_v the_o foundation_n and_o chief_a cornerstone_n what_o a_o task_n be_v it_o to_o reconcile_v but_o bellarmine_n and_o holden_n knot_n and_o cressy_a both_o in_o english_a white_a have_v so_o much_o wit_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o rushworth_n dialogue_n when_o he_o write_v in_o english_a to_o carry_v on_o the_o matter_n as_o smooth_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v all_o of_o a_o mind_n but_o when_o he_o write_v in_o latin_a how_o many_o way_n of_o resolution_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v unsound_a can_v he_o find_v among_o the_o papist_n as_o different_a from_o his_o own_o vid._n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o theolog_fw-la tract_n 1._o sect._n 28.29_o reader_n adhere_v to_o god_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o a_o faithful_a ministry_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o as_o a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o arise_v at_o jerusalem_n be_v disperse_v over_o the_o world_n contain_v all_o that_o be_v christian_n renounce_v not_o right_a reason_n or_o thy_o sense_n and_o live_v according_a to_o the_o light_n which_o be_v vouchsafe_v thou_o and_o then_o thou_o shall_v be_v safe_a from_o popery_n and_o all_o other_o pernicious_a damn_v error_n marc._n 10._o 1656_o 7._o r.b._n to_o the_o literate_a romanist_n that_o will_v read_v this_o book_n man_n and_o brethren_n a_o write_v that_o so_o much_o concern_v your_o cause_n i_o think_v shall_v tender_v you_o some_o account_n of_o its_o publication_n especial_o when_o i_o know_v that_o not_o only_o the_o divulge_v but_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v therein_o be_v so_o heinous_a a_o matter_n in_o your_o eye_n that_o if_o i_o be_v in_o your_o power_n the_o suspicion_n of_o it_o may_v bring_v i_o to_o the_o rack_n and_o the_o strappado_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o it_o will_v expose_v i_o to_o the_o flame_n i_o have_v many_o time_n consider_v that_o you_o can_v never_o sure_o endure_v to_o torment_v man_n in_o your_o inquisition_n and_o consume_v they_o to_o ash_n and_o so_o industrious_o to_o embroyle_v the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o blood_n and_o misery_n to_o work_v they_o to_o your_o mind_n and_o set_v up_o your_o own_o way_n if_o you_o do_v not_o think_v it_o right_n and_o think_v they_o exceed_v bid_v who_o you_o thus_o destroy_v i_o find_v that_o my_o own_o heart_n will_v serve_v i_o to_o use_v toad_n and_o serpent_n and_o destroy_a vermin_n half_o as_o bad_a as_o you_o do_v protestant_n that_o be_v to_o put_v they_o to_o death_n though_o not_o to_o torment_v they_o so_o long_o but_o for_o gentle_a and_o more_o harmless_a creature_n i_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o a_o great_a reluctancy_n of_o my_o nature_n i_o must_v needs_o therefore_o by_o your_o work_n bear_v you_o record_v that_o you_o have_v a_o zeal_n for_o god_n but_o so_o have_v some_o before_o you_o that_o guide_v it_o not_o by_o knowledge_n rom._n 10.2_o and_o i_o suppose_v your_o way_n be_v undoubted_o right_a in_o your_o own_o eye_n or_o else_o you_o dare_v never_o prosecute_v it_o with_o such_o violence_n and_o yet_o one_o that_o be_v once_o as_o zealous_a in_o his_o way_n and_o shut_v up_o the_o saint_n in_o prison_n and_o receive_v authority_n from_o the_o high_a priest_n to_o put_v they_o to_o death_n and_o compel_v they_o to_o blaspheam_n do_v afterward_o call_v all_o this_o but_o madness_n act_v 26.9_o 10_o 11._o but_o methinks_v i_o find_v myself_o oblige_v when_o i_o see_v man_n differ_v from_o i_o with_o such_o height_n of_o confidence_n to_o give_v they_o some_o reason_n of_o my_o differ_a thought_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n of_o success_n that_o i_o can_v expect_v from_o this_o account_n to_o make_v any_o addition_n or_o alteration_n in_o your_o belief_n i_o have_v no_o great_a reason_n to_o expect_v while_o you_o read_v my_o word_n with_o this_o prejudice_n that_o they_o be_v damnable_a heresy_n and_o depend_v upon_o he_o who_o you_o suppose_v infallible_a for_o the_o fashion_v of_o your_o faith_n and_o if_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o i_o expect_v satisfaction_n from_o you_o with_o any_o great_a hope_n i_o shall_v but_o dissemble_v for_o i_o have_v not_o be_v negligent_a in_o read_v such_o write_n of_o your_o own_o as_o may_v acquaint_v i_o both_o with_o
it_o not_o for_o the_o will_n itself_o be_v under_o a_o law_n which_o put_v it_o upon_o duty_n and_o not_o only_o restrain_v it_o from_o sinful_a volition_n or_o nolition_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o will_v do_v but_o suspend_v its_o act_n in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n and_o thereby_o let_v the_o command_v faculty_n miscarry_v i_o shall_v yet_o believe_v that_o this_o be_v forbid_v and_o a_o proper_a sin_n what_o if_o you_o have_v a_o charge_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o your_o flock_n and_o you_o sleep_v while_o they_o be_v mislead_v or_o if_o you_o be_v a_o physician_n and_o have_v charge_n of_o your_o patient_n life_n and_o you_o fall_v asleep_a till_o they_o be_v past_a recovery_n be_v you_o no_o sinner_n and_o do_v you_o not_o go_v against_o the_o law_n yes_o you_o be_v a_o murderer_n for_o though_o the_o thing_n be_v not_o voluntary_a quoad_fw-la actum_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la it_o be_v moral_o or_o imputative_o voluntary_a propter_fw-la omissionem_fw-la actus_fw-la if_o wolverhampton_n papist_n be_v feed_v with_o such_o doctrine_n as_o this_o they_o may_v well_o be_v many_o but_o they_o be_v unlikely_a to_o be_v good_a inconsiderateness_n which_o i_o take_v for_o one_o of_o the_o most_o destroy_a sin_n it_o seem_v be_v a_o notable_a preservative_n from_o sin_n for_o be_v sure_a you_o deliberate_v not_o and_o you_o break_v no_o law_n of_o god_n what_o ever_o you_o do_v and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o law_n against_o lie_v except_o the_o lie_v of_o the_o high_a strain_n that_o be_v by_o h.t._n except_v no_o wonder_n then_o if_o papist_n be_v liar_n and_o can_v you_o think_v it_o any_o injury_n to_o you_o if_o from_o hence_o i_o interptet_fw-la not_o only_o many_o of_o your_o historical_a write_n such_o as_o the_o image_n of_o both_o church_n etc._n etc._n but_o also_o much_o of_o the_o jugging_n that_o be_v in_o england_n at_o this_o day_n if_o you_o put_v yourselves_o in_o the_o garb_n of_o quaker_n enthusiast_n anabaptist_n etc._n etc._n and_o pretend_v that_o you_o be_v of_o their_o opinion_n and_o deny_v yourselves_o to_o be_v what_o you_o be_v as_o long_o as_o you_o think_v that_o these_o lie_n be_v pious_a and_o rather_o honour_n god_n then_o great_o dishonour_v he_o and_o rather_o do_v good_a to_o other_o by_o promote_a the_o catholic_a cause_n then_o notable_o injure_v they_o can_v any_o man_n say_v that_o be_v of_o your_o opinion_n that_o they_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o why_o call_v you_o that_o a_o venial_a sin_n which_o be_v against_o no_o law_n when_o sin_n be_v a_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n and_o where_o there_o ●s_v no_o law_n there_o be_v no_o transgression_n 1_o joh._n 3.4_o rom._n 4.15_o and_o why_o say_v you_o ●hat_n veniam_fw-la meretur_fw-la when_o yet_o you_o say_v that_o ●aenam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la non_fw-la meretur_fw-la how_o can_v there_o ●e_a venia_fw-la sine_fw-la merito_fw-la vel_fw-la debito_fw-la paenae_fw-la what_o ●eed_v you_o any_o pardon_n of_o that_o which_o be_v never_o ●eserved_v by_o you_o and_o what_o need_v you_o ask_v forgiveness_n of_o these_o sin_n or_o be_v behold_v to_o god_n ●or_a it_o if_o the_o punishment_n to_o be_v forgive_v be_v never_o due_a will_v you_o beg_v the_o remission_n of_o a_o debt_n which_o be_v no_o debt_n aquinas_n make_v venial_a and_o mortal_a sin_n to_o differ_v as_o reparabile_fw-la &_o irreparabile_fw-la because_o from_o a_o inward_a principle_n the_o one_o may_v be_v repair_v but_o the_o other_o not_o without_o infuse_a supernatural_a grace_n but_o be_v it_o ever_o the_o less_o sin_n because_o it_o be_v reparabile_fw-la nay_o what_o need_v it_o reparation_n if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o transgression_n but_o what_o be_v this_o reparation_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o be_v it_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o guilt_n and_o punishment_n no_o sure_o for_o eternal_a punishment_n he_o say_v it_o deserve_v not_o and_o internal_a principle_n do_v not_o sure_o forgive_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n can_v we_o forgive_v ourselves_o what_o be_v it_o then_o be_v it_o the_o remove_n of_o the_o blot_n no_o proper_o peccatum_fw-la veniale_a non_fw-la inducit_fw-la maculam_fw-la as_o before_o say_v be_v it_o that_o venial_a sin_n be_v easy_a conquer_v and_o forsake_v then_o mortal_a no_o sure_o for_o aquinas_n tell_v we_o that_o a_o man_n may_v live_v for_o a_o little_a while_n without_o venial_a sin_n but_o not_o long_o but_o without_o mortal_a sin_n infra_fw-la they_o may_v easy_o live_v till_o death_n what_o this_o reparation_n than_o be_v i_o do_v not_o certain_o know_v but_o whatever_o it_o be_v methinks_v it_o shall_v suppose_v a_o proper_a sin_n and_o not_o only_o analogical_a a_o a_o desert_n of_o eternal_a punishment_n to_o be_v remit_v and_o here_o i_o must_v add_v that_o another_o thin●_n that_o late_o have_v much_o disaffect_v i_o to_o you●_n profession_n be_v to_o see_v by_o what_o actual_a fraud_n and_o juggle_n it_o be_v propagate_v do_v you_o think_v i_o see_v not_o the_o game_n that_o you_o be_v now_o play_v in_o the_o dark_a in_o england_n in_o the_o person_n of_o seeker_n behmenist_n paracelsian_n origenist_n quaker_n and_o anabaptist_n i_o must_v confess_v i_o natural_o abhor_v collusion_n and_o dissimulation_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o god_n if_o your_o way_n be_v of_o god_n it_o need_v not_o such_o device_n to_o uphold_v it_o nor_o will_v it_o suit_v so_o well_o with_o work_n of_o darkness_n if_o you_o have_v the_o truth_n produce_v it_o naked_a and_o deal_v plain_o and_o play_v above_o board_n for_o my_o part_n i_o do_v not_o fear_v be_v cheat_v out_o of_o my_o religion_n by_o any_o thing_n but_o seem_a force_n of_o argument_n for_o i_o mean_v to_o know_v what_o i_o receive_v before_o i_o take_v it_o and_o to_o taste_v and_o chew_v it_o before_o i_o let_v it_o down_o but_o the_o blind_a incautelous_a multitude_n and_o half_a witted_a giddy_a person_n and_o discontent_a licentious_a half_a study_a gentleman_n may_v possible_o be_v catch_v by_o such_o chaff_n as_o this_o another_o of_o your_o dissimulation_n which_o increase_v my_o dissatisfaction_n be_v your_o pretend_v ●o_o the_o ignorant_a people_n that_o you_o be_v all_o of_o a_o mind_n and_o there_o be_v no_o division_n among_o you_o ●nd_v make_v our_o division_n the_o great_a argument_n ●o_o raise_v ●n_n odium_fw-la against_o our_o doctrine_n call_v we_o schismatic_n heretic_n and_o the_o like_a when_o ●ndeed_o no_o one_o thing_n do_v so_o much_o turn_v away_o my_o heart_n from_o you_o as_o your_o abominable_a schism_n do_v we_o not_o know_v of_o the_o multitude_n of_o opinion_n among_o you_o mention_v by_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o of_o your_o writer_n if_o you_o call_v i_o out_o to_o any_o more_o of_o this_o work_n i_o mean_v the_o next_o time_n to_o present_a to_o the_o world_n a_o catalogue_n of_o your_o division_n among_o yourselves_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o notable_a your_o unity_n be_v if_o the_o jesuit_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v what_o a_o silly_a sottish_a generation_n be_v your_o secular_a priest_n if_o your_o priest_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v what_o a_o seditious_a hypocritical_a cheat_v pack_n be_v the_o jesuit_n i_o speak_v not_o the_o word_n of_o your_o protestant_a adversary_n but_o of_o those_o of_o your_o own_o church_n do_v i_o not_o know_v what_o guiliel_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-it amore_fw-la and_o many_o another_o say_v of_o your_o own_o church_n do_v you_o think_v i_o never_o read_v watson_n quodlibet_n and_o the_o many_o pretty_a story_n of_o the_o jesuit_n exploit_n there_o mention_v by_o he_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o you_o suffer_v many_o of_o your_o own_o follower_n to_o read_v these_o book_n that_o be_v write_v against_o one_o another_o by_o yourselves_o but_o the_o great_a division_n among_o you_o that_o quite_o overthrow_v your_o cause_n in_o my_o esteem_n be_v that_o between_o the_o french_a and_o italian_a in_o your_o very_a foundation_n which_o all_o your_o faith_n be_v resolve_v into_o you_o have_v no_o belief_n of_o scripture_n nor_o in_o christ_n no_o hope_n of_o heaven_n you_o differ_v not_o from_o turk_n and_o infidel_n but_o only_o upon_o the_o credit_n and_o authority_n of_o your_o church_n and_o this_o church_n mus●_n be_v infallible_a or_o else_o your_o faith_n be_v fallible_a a●_n lest_o it_o must_v be_v of_o sovereign_a authority_n and_o when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o upshot_n you_o be_v not_o agree●_n what_o this_o church_n be_v one_o say_v it_o be_v the_o pope_n with_o a_o general_n council_n and_o another_o say_v it_o be_v a_o general_n council_n though_o the_o pope_n dissent_n one_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v fallible_a and_o the_o other_o say_v a_o council_n be_v fallible_a one_o say_v a_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n and_o another_o say_v the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o now_o what_o be_v become_v of_o your_o religion_n nay_o be_v it_o not_o
party_n or_o from_o any_o that_o be_v yet_o in_o that_o church_n and_o yet_o take_v up_o any_o divide_v title_n or_o way_n therein_o though_o they_o withdraw_v not_o from_o it_o as_o they_o be_v such_o i_o be_o none_o of_o they_o and_o therefore_o disclaim_v when_o i_o express_v my_o religion_n such_o private_a name_n i_o be_o no_o lutheran_n calvinist_n arminian_n papist_n socinian_n etc._n etc._n but_o a_o catholic_a but_o yet_o when_o i_o say_v i_o be_o a_o reform_a catholic_a i_o purposely_o disclaim_v the_o corruption_n of_o popery_n and_o in_o that_o word_n renounce_v their_o error_n as_o such_o as_o by_o the_o word_n catholic_a i_o renounce_v their_o schism_n and_o so_o i_o may_v agree_v with_o luther_n calvin_n or_o any_o man_n in_o reformation_n so_o far_o as_o they_o hold_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o that_o if_o malicious_a adversary_n will_v put_v the_o name_n of_o sect_n upon_o the_o catholic_a verity_n and_o call_v it_o by_o the_o name_n of_o zuinglianisme_n lutheranisme_n calvinis●●_n or_o the_o like_a pretend_v that_o it_o have_v its_o spring_n from_o these_o man_n they_o shall_v not_o by_o such_o unworthy_a mean_n remove_v i_o from_o the_o catholic_a religion_n nor_o yet_o cause_v i_o to_o own_o their_o corruption_n because_o they_o have_v name_v the_o opposition_n of_o they_o as_o a_o heresy_n augustine_n will_v not_o turn_v donatist_n because_o they_o name_v the_o catholic_n caecilian_n nor_o will_v prosper_n turn_v pelagian_a because_o they_o call_v the_o orthodox_n predestinarian_n or_o fatalist_n nor_o will_v athanasius_n before_o they_o turn_v arrian_n because_o they_o call_v the_o orthodox_n tritheist_n it_o be_v not_o other_o man_n fasten_v upon_o we_o the_o name_n of_o a_o man_n or_o of_o a_o sect_n that_o prove_v we_o sectary_n or_o that_o we_o have_v our_o religion_n original_o from_o that_o man_n yet_o do_v we_o so_o much_o reverence_v their_o name_n that_o we_o rejoice_v in_o their_o labour_n for_o the_o church_n and_o bless_v god_n for_o they_o and_o endeavour_v to_o imitate_v they_o in_o their_o holy_a doctrine_n and_o life_n though_o we_o make_v none_o but_o christ_n the_o lord_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o for_o the_o term_n of_o the_o predicate_v they_o need_v no_o great_a explication_n by_o salvation_n we_o mean_v principal_o everlasting_a glory_n in_o heaven_n by_o the_o way_n to_o it_o we_o mean_v the_o mean_v appoint_v by_o god_n for_o the_o attain_n it_o the_o principal_a mean_n indeed_o be_v christ_n himself_o who_o be_v eminent_o call_v the_o way_n and_o no_o man_n come_v to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o he_o but_o in_o subordination_n to_o christ_n all_o other_o mean_n be_v the_o way_n by_o a_o safe_a way_n we_o mean_v a_o way_n that_o in_o svo_fw-la genere_fw-la be_v sufficient_a to_o the_o attainment_n of_o the_o end_n so_o that_o all_o that_o sincere_o be_v that_o way_n shall_v attain_v that_o end_n a_o certain_a mean_n of_o happiness_n to_o all_o that_o faithful_o use_v it_o for_o it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o no_o religion_n or_o sound_a doctrine_n will_v save_v a_o man_n that_o be_v not_o faithful_a in_o the_o reception_n and_o improvement_n of_o they_o a_o true_a religion_n will_v not_o save_v he_o that_o be_v not_o true_a to_o his_o religion_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o multitude_n even_o of_o protestant_n do_v perish_v though_o their_o religion_n be_v the_o only_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n for_o they_o be_v not_o hearty_o of_o the_o religion_n which_o they_o profess_v they_o have_v that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v the_o seal_n and_o fit_a enough_o of_o its_o own_o nature_n quantum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la to_o imprint_v the_o image_n of_o god_n upon_o their_o soul_n but_o if_o they_o keep_v this_o seal_n in_o their_o chest_n and_o apply_v it_o not_o effectual_o to_o their_o heart_n they_o may_v have_v unholy_a heart_n and_o life_n though_o they_o profess_v a_o holy_a faith_n and_o religion_n and_o therefore_o may_v perish_v for_o all_o that_o profession_n yea_o and_o perish_v most_o deplorable_o because_o their_o profession_n do_v aggravate_v their_o sin_n if_o a_o man_n religion_n or_o believe_v doctrine_n be_v bad_a in_o the_o main_a the_o man_n himself_o must_v needs_o be_v bad_a too_o and_o therefore_o no_o man_n of_o such_o a_o religion_n can_v be_v save_v but_o if_o a_o man_n religion_n or_o profess_a doctrine_n be_v never_o so_o good_a it_o be_v possible_a he_o may_v be_v bad_a that_o do_v profess_v they_o and_o then_o no_o religion_n can_v save_v a_o wicked_a man_n so_o that_o of_o the_o true_a religion_n some_o be_v save_v but_o not_o all_o but_o of_o a_o bad_a religion_n in_o the_o main_a no_o man_n can_v be_v good_a or_o be_v save_v i_o come_v to_o the_o argument_n by_o which_o i_o prove_v the_o affirmative_a that_o the_o reform_a catholic_a christian_n religion_n common_o call_v protestant_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n arg._n 1._o that_o religion_n which_o best_o agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n above_o all_o other_o religion_n in_o the_o world_n be_v a_o safe_a yea_o the_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o the_o reform_a catholic_a christian_n religion_n commo●●●_n call_v protestant_n do_v best_a agree_v wit●_n the_o word_n of_o god_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n one_o will_v think_v among_o christian_n the_o major_n shall_v be_v unquestionable_a but_o here_o the_o corrupt_a romanist_n have_v presume_v to_o make_v a_o new_a word_n of_o god_n that_o so_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o case_n may_v be_v impossible_a unless_o we_o will_v go_v up_o to_o these_o philistine_n to_o sharpen_v our_o weapon_n for_o they_o deny_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n or_o sufficient_a to_o be_v the_o rule_n for_o decide_v of_o controversy_n in_o matter_n of_o say_v and_o tell_v we_o that_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v another_o part_n and_o those_o tradition_n be_v such_o as_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o deliver_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o whole_a church_n be_v only_o the_o roman_a party_n and_o thus_o do_v they_o by_o their_o own_o authority_n undertake_v to_o damn_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o make_v themselves_o only_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o by_o this_o trick_n of_o wit_n they_o have_v get_v one_o half_a of_o god_n word_n into_o their_o closert_n and_o that_o it_o be_v his_o word_n which_o they_o say_v be_v his_o word_n and_o that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o they_o be_v no_o blab_n or_o revealer_n of_o secret_n they_o have_v for_o some_o hundred_o year_n keep_v this_o close_a as_o a_o secret_a to_o themselves_o yea_o from_o themselves_o as_o well_o as_o to_o we_o so_o that_o when_o the_o common_a proverb_n take_v that_o to_o be_v a_o secret_n which_o one_o or_o two_o know_v but_o not_o when_o three_o know_v it_o yet_o these_o man_n have_v a_o word_n of_o god_n which_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o keeper_n of_o and_o yet_o those_o that_o keep_v it_o know_v it_o not_o themselves_o much_o less_o can_v we_o that_o stand_v by_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o but_o we_o must_v all_o wait_v till_o the_o last_o pope_n have_v breathe_v out_o his_o last_o determination_n before_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v say_v to_o keep_v it_o can_v come_v to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o among_o they_o it_o be_v ●ome_o to_o this_o pass_n that_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o god_n word_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o entrust_v subject_n but_o if_o any_o man_n whatever_o bring_v we_o forth_o a_o tradition_n and_o say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o come_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n we_o shall_v desire_v more_o than_o ●his_v word_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o and_o when_o he_o bring_v we_o as_o good_a proof_n that_o his_o tradition_n come_v from_o the_o apostle_n as_o we_o shall_v bring_v he_o that_o the_o scripture_n come_v from_o they_o then_o will_v we_o cheerful_o receive_v his_o tradition_n but_o not_o without_o sufficient_a proof_n upon_o the_o boasting_n of_o corrupt_a interest_v man_n as_o for_o the_o minor_a that_o our_o religion_n be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n i_o shall_v now_o say_v but_o this_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o first_o we_o take_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o only_a test_n or_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o practice_n and_o we_o tie_v not_o ourselves_o to_o any_o other_o by-rule_a which_o may_v force_v we_o to_o a_o misunderstanding_n of_o it_o it_o be_v only_o the_o scripture_n that_o we_o still_o profess_v do_v contain_v our_o religion_n and_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o quarrel_n between_o we_o and_o rome_n that_o they_o will_v not_o take_v this_o word_n
therefore_o ●●ey_n shall_v have_v life_n suppose_v it_o to_o be_v a_o true_a faith_n ●●at_n work_v by_o love_n the_o jew_n that_o hear_v peters●●rmon_n ●●rmon_z act._n 2._o be_v convert_v and_o add_v to_o the_o church_n even_a thre●_n thousand_o soul_n and_o put_v into_o a_o state_n of_o justification_n by_o believe_v that_o sermon_n 〈◊〉_d 37_o 38_o 41_o 46_o 47._o but_o the_o protestant_n believe_v ●_o that_o peter_n preach_v in_o that_o sermon_n there●●_n they_o also_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o justify_v and_o lest_o the_o accuse_v devil_n or_o papist_n sh●●_n trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o any_o of_o his_o people_n christ_n 〈◊〉_d protest_v it_o with_o his_o own_o mouth_n joh._n 5.24_o ve●●ly_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o hear_v my_o word_n 〈◊〉_d believe_v on_o he_o that_o send_v i_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n but_o be_v pass_v fr●●_n death_n to_o life_n me_n think_v this_o shall_v make_v any_o ●●liever_n tremble_v at_o the_o thought_n of_o condemn_a tho●_n that_o christ_n have_v protest_v shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v christ_n have_v promise_v that_o all_o those_o that_o receive_v ●_o word_n and_o in_o who_o his_o word_n abide_v shall_v be_v belove_v of_o the_o father_n and_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o ●_o hear_v in_o what_o they_o ask_v joh._n 14.23_o &_o 15.7_o doubtless_o that_o which_o christ_n himself_o preach_v be_v the_o t●_n gospel_n and_o so_o far_o sufficient_a that_o whoever_o believe●_n it_o shall_v be_v save_v otherwise_o christ_n can_v not_o ●a●_n convert_v any_o soul_n so_o far_o as_o to_o have_v bring_v the●_n into_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n by_o his_o doctrine_n and_o the●_n peter_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o tr●●_n christian_n by_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d if_o the_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n preach_v be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v true_a christian_n and_o church-member_n o●_n those_o that_o receive_v it_o than_o the_o protestant_n be_v such_o for_o they_o believe_v every_o word_n that_o the_o evangelist_n record_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o the_o papi●●_n say_v that_o there_o be_v more_o of_o his_o doctrine_n necessary_a t●_n salvation_n which_o the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o record_v i●_n scripture_n 1._o we_o call_v for_o their_o proof_n of_o it_o and_o 2._o w●●●●ow_o that_o the_o evangelist_n do_v purposely_o write_v th●_n ●●ur_n gospel_n or_o history_n of_o christ_n of_o purpose_n to_o acquaint_v the_o world_n with_o his_o nature_n birth_n life_n doctrine_n ●eath_n and_o resurrection_n etc._n etc._n luke_n profess_v that_o he_o ●rote_v his_o gospel_n upon_o perfect_a understanding_n of_o all_o ●●ings_n from_o the_o very_a first_o which_o contain_v a_o decla●●tion_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v most_o sure_o believe_v ●mong_v we_o even_o as_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o they_o that_o ●●om_o the_o beginning_n be_v eye_n witness_n and_o minister_n ●f_v the_o word_n luk._n 1.1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o and_o he_o tell_v we_o act._n ●_o 1_o 2._o that_o he_o write_v his_o gospel_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o ●esus_fw-la begin_v both_o to_o do_v and_o teach_v until_o the_o day_n in_o ●hich_v he_o be_v take_v up_o it_o will_v therefore_o have_v ●een_n a_o exceed_a blemish_n to_o the_o evangelist_n that_o ●rote_v of_o set_a purpose_n both_o the_o history_n of_o christ_n ●ife_n and_o doctrine_n if_o they_o have_v leave_v out_o any_o part_n of_o it_o ●hat_n be_v of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n protestant_n therefore_o that_o believe_v all_o the_o gospel_n do_v believe_v so_o much_o ●s_n may_v bring_v they_o safe_o to_o salvation_n if_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a teacher_n nor_o the_o gospel_n itself_o a_o ●ufficient_a doctrine_n of_o life_n then_o whither_o shall_v we_o go_v to_o seek_v it_o then_o peter_n himself_o be_v not_o the_o rock_n ●or_a a_o true_a christian_a by_o christ_n teach_v and_o then_o ●he_v pope_n can_v not_o derive_v that_o from_o peter_n which_o he_o ●ad_n not_o but_o peter_n himself_o think_v and_o teach_v otherwise_o he_o say_v lord_n whether_o shall_v we_o go_v we_o know_v that_o thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n for_o my_o part_n i_o will_v take_v peter_n counsel_n and_o go_v to_o christ_n for_o the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o be_v purposely_o record_v by_o four_o evangelist_n in_o the_o gospel_n let_v who_o will_v go_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o another_o gospel_n to_o supply_v the_o suppose_a defect_n of_o this_o for_o i_o will_v not_o in_o act._n 22._o &_o 26._o and_o other_o place_v paul_n preach_v so_o much_o of_o the_o gospel_n as_o may_v have_v make_v true_a believer_n and_o all_o that_o the_o protestant_n receive_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o they_o be_v a_o true_a church_n rom._n 1.7_o and_o all_o the_o doctrine_n that_o paul_n write_v to_o they_o we_o do_v believe_v paul_n tell_v the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n act._n 20.27_o that_o he_o have_v not_o shun_v to_o declare_v to_o they_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v sum_v up_o in_o repentance_n towards_o god_n and_o faith_n towards_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n vers_fw-la 21._o and_o whatsoever_o paul_n have_v write_v to_o these_o ephesian_n or_o any_o other_o church_n or_o person_n we_o believe_v but_o what_o shall_v we_o talk_v any_o more_o with_o such_o a_o arrogant_a unreasonable_a sort_n of_o man_n that_o dare_v maintain_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o large_a enough_o to_o salvation_n atheist_n and_o infidel_n say_v of_o the_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v too_o big_a to_o be_v all_o true_a and_o papist_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o big_a enough_o to_o bring_v a_o man_n to_o heaven_n that_o believe_v and_o obey_v it_o shall_v the_o holy_a ghost_n indite_v a_o volume_n as_o big_a as_o the_o bible_n and_o when_o he_o have_v do_v shall_v any_o pretend_v to_o be_v christian_n persuade_v the_o world_n that_o he_o that_o believe_v all_o this_o shall_v be_v damn_v if_o he_o believe_v not_o the_o closet_n tradition_n which_o the_o roman_a bishop_n pretend_v to_o be_v the_o keeper_n of_o nay_o see_v the_o strange_a contradiction_n of_o this_o giddy_a fiction_n they_o lock_v up_o this_o scripture_n itself_o from_o the_o common_a people_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n they_o damn_v the_o translate_n of_o it_o as_o the_o root_n of_o all_o heresy_n and_o burn_v man_n to_o ash_n for_o use_v the_o bible_n when_o they_o can_v keep_v it_o unknown_a any_o long_o they_o translate_v it_o themselves_o as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v to_o their_o own_o advantage_n and_o put_v it_o forth_o with_o their_o pervert_v annotation_n and_o yet_o when_o they_o have_v all_o do_v they_o condemn_v any_o that_o read_v it_o without_o a_o special_a licence_n from_o their_o ordinary_n which_o in_o england_n and_o france_n they_o sometime_o grant_v to_o avoid_v suspicion_n but_o in_o spain_n italy_n etc._n etc._n too_o few_o if_o any_o at_o all_o and_o when_o they_o have_v write_v voluminous_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o people_n for_o salvation_n and_o that_o ignorance_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o devotion_n they_o come_v back_o again_o and_o dispute_v against_o the_o protestant_n that_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v but_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o in_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n it_o seem_v then_o that_o the_o pope_n canon_n be_v more_o necessary_a than_o the_o scripture_n for_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n but_o not_o without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o pope_n yes_o that_o he_o may_v too_o if_o some_o of_o they_o mistake_v not_o if_o they_o will_v but_o implicit_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o infallible_a sovereign_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o believe_v some_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n upon_o his_o credit_n he_o may_v be_v save_v without_o either_o scripture_n or_o canon_n so_o he_o be_v but_o ready_a to_o believe_v and_o obey_v whatever_o shall_v be_v offer_v to_o he_o by_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v moreover_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v frequent_o promise_v remission_n and_o salvation_n to_o all_o that_o true_o repent_v that_o love_n god_n in_o christ_n that_o mortify_v the_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n but_o all_o this_o do_v the_o protestant_n and_o their_o religion_n teach_v they_o to_o do_v it_o paul_n conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 8.11_o but_o the_o protestant_n be_v in_o
point_n of_o order_n of_o ●_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n this_o do_v not_o make_v they_o ●●_o we_o to_o be_v of_o two_o religion_n or_o way_n of_o salvation_n as_o long_o as_o they_o do_v not_o introduce_v any_o dangerous_a ●_o destructive_a point_n under_o that_o pretence_n obj._n but_o the_o church_n still_o hold_v those_o thing_n as_o ●●cessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o you_o deny_v ans_fw-fr w●_n deny_v that_o to_o be_v true_a some_o of_o the_o point_n in_o differ●●●_n be_v novelty_n of_o your_o own_o which_o the_o ancient_a chur●●_n do_v never_o hold_v the_o rest_n be_v such_o as_o they_o never_o ●_o such_o a_o stress_n as_o man_n salvation_n upon_o to_o conclude_v let_v it_o be_v consider_v whether_o th●_n argument_n may_v not_o damn_v yourselves_o which_o i_o t●_n against_o you_o thus._n the_o true_a safe_a religion_n have_v 〈◊〉_d a_o visible_a church_n profess_v it_o from_o christ_n time_n ●_o ●●w_o but_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o romanist_n as_o comprehend_v all_o point_n of_o their_o faith_n or_o make_v by_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v not_o have_v any_o visible_a ●●urch_n profess_v it_o of_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o ●●rist_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a religion_n nor_o a_o ●●e_z way_n to_o salvation_n the_o minor_a i_o shall_v undertake_v ●●re_o seasonable_o to_o make_v good_a and_o our_o divine_n ●●e_v do_v it_o already_o no_o doubt_n but_o common_a reason_n and_o justice_n requir●●_n that_o you_o that_o call_v to_o we_o so_o earnest_o for_o a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o professor_n of_o our_o religion_n in_o all_o age_n ●●uld_v be_v as_o much_o oblige_v yourselves_o to_o give_v we_o a_o ●●●alogue_n of_o you_o yea_o and_o to_o give_v it_o first_o because_o 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o first_o in_o plead_v the_o necessity_n of_o it_o undertake_v this_o task_n therefore_o and_o perform_v it_o well_o and_o ●u_n shall_v carry_v the_o whole_a cause_n give_v we_o a_o cata●ue_n of_o any_o beside_o impeach_v heretic_n that_o do_v ●n_v your_o main_a point_n of_o popery_n for_o many_o hundred_o ●●rs_n after_o christ_n and_o we_o will_v give_v you_o a_o full_a ac●●nt_n of_o such_o as_o contradict_v those_o conceit_n and_o be●●●ed_a as_o we_o do_v and_o let_v both_o be_v compare_v together_o ●_o let_v the_o most_o satisfaction_n and_o the_o full_a evidence_n ●●●ry_v it_o you_o make_v a_o mere_a empty_a noise_n among_o the_o ●●gar_n of_o antiquity_n and_o universality_n and_o call_v for_o ●roof_n of_o the_o perpetual_a or_o continue_a visibility_n of_o ●_o church_n as_o if_o in_o this_o you_o have_v the_o advantage_n ●_o the_o balance_n do_v turn_v on_o your_o side_n when_o as_o ●●ough_o we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o necessity_n of_o ●_o proof_n in_o this_o as_o you_o pretend_v yet_o we_o know_v your_o advantage_n here_o to_o be_v so_o great_a that_o if_o you_o will_v ●_o be_v persuade_v to_o this_o way_n of_o trial_n it_o will_v be_v to_o the_o ●●●er_a shame_n and_o confusion_n of_o your_o cause_n what_o be_v the_o ●●tter_n else_o that_o you_o still_o appeal_v to_o the_o latter_a or_o pre●●t_a church_n and_o that_o be_v only_o to_o the_o roman_a and_o that_o be_v only_a to_o yourselves_o if_o we_o do_v but_o invite_v you_o to_o trial_n by_o scripture_n and_o the_o father_n and_o record_n the_o three_o first_o age_n you_o present_o scorn_v the_o mo●_n and_o fall_n upon_o the_o father_n with_o accusation_n as_o if_o th●_n have_v not_o understand_v or_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o christian_a or_o church_n for_o you_o say_v they_o do_v not_o meddle_v with_o th●_n controversy_n and_o so_o you_o call_v we_o down_o to_o the_o la●_n or_o present_a time_n as_o have_v equal_a authority_n with_o ●_o first_o to_o which_o we_o say_v 1._o that_o the_o silence_n of_o ●_o first_o time_n concern_v these_o matter_n if_o there_o w●_n no_o more_o as_o yet_o there_o be_v be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v t●_n they_o be_v not_o then_o take_v for_o any_o necessary_a point_n faith_n for_o though_o our_o record_n of_o the_o sec●_n age_n be_v very_o short_a yet_o both_o they_o and_o m●_n more_o those_o of_o the_o three_o and_o four_o age_n contain_v such_o purposely_o undertake_v explication●_n the_o christian_a faith_n that_o we_o can_v imagine_v suc●_n multitude_n of_o necessary_a point_n will_v have_v be_v o●ted_v 2._o and_o though_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o present_a ●_o have_v equal_a authority_n in_o rule_v their_o congregation_n with_o those_o of_o the_o second_o yet_o they_o can_v give_v ●_o sure_o a_o account_n what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n and_o prac●_n of_o the_o former_a age_n nor_o any_o way_n prove_v it_o to_o we_o ●_o by_o produce_v such_o record_n the_o papist_n themselves_o be_v so_o far_o from_o deny●_n that_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o church_n do_v hold_v ●_o positive_a part_n of_o our_o religion_n that_o they_o hold_v it_o themselves_o for_o they_o themselves_o profess_v to_o believe_v ●●_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o we_o do_v they_o say_v ●_o believe_v the_o creed_n call_v the_o apostle_n and_o the_o scene_n and_o constantinopolitan_a creed_n and_o that_o of_o ●●thanasius_fw-la and_o so_o do_v we_o still_o take_v the_o holy_a scepture_n only_o for_o our_o rule_n so_o that_o their_o own_o tong●_n ●ust_z confess_v the_o antiquity_n and_o universality_n and_o accession_n of_o our_o religion_n for_o this_o be_v we_o but_o all_o that_o they_o have_v to_o ob●ject_n be_v this_o that_o we_o ●n_v name_v no_o church_n or_o father_n that_o hold_v our_o negative_n to_o which_o i_o say_v 1._o the_o negative_n at_o least_o for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o if_o not_o all_o be_v ●e_v mere_a consequence_n of_o the_o affirmative_n and_o posi●ves_n and_o employ_v or_o plain_o include_v in_o they_o for_o example_n when_o our_o religion_n say_v thou_o shall_v wor●ip_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v ●is_n include_v the_o negative_a thou_o shall_v ●ot_n worship_v or_o serve_v saint_n 4.10_o angel_n or_o ●ny_a other_o save_v only_o by_o a_o service_n and_o honour_n due_o ●bservient_fw-fr to_o the_o service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o ●herefore_o that_o we_o give_v not_o divine_a worship_n to_o the_o consecrated_a host_n or_o the_o virgin_n mary_n or_o to_o any_o ●ther_n mere_a creature_n our_o religion_n teach_v we_o to_o ●o_o all_o thing_n to_o edify_a 1_o cor._n 14.26_o this_o includ●th_v the_o negative_n that_o we_o must_v not_o worship_n god_n in_o ●n_n unknown_a tongue_n or_o unedifying_a manner_n bleat_v ●nd_n bellow_v out_o our_o prayer_n in_o hideous_a or_o ridiculous_a tone_n our_o religion_n make_v it_o the_o ministerial_a commission_n to_o teach_v the_o nation_n and_o baptise_v mat._n 28.19_o 20._o this_o include_v the_o negative_a that_o woman_n or_o lay_v man_n shall_v not_o so_o teach_v that_o be_v as_o commissioned_n officer_n nor_o baptize_v 28.19_o this_o affirmative_a peter_n be_v send_v to_o disciple_n nation_n include_v this_o negative_a peter_n be_v not_o send_v to_o be_v the_o fix_a bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o there_o ●o_o reside_v this_o affirmative_a the_o apostle_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n include_v this_o negative_a ●_o peter_n alone_o be_v not_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n this_o affirmative_a it_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n which_o we_o take_v ●nd_n eat_v and_o drink_v in_o the_o eucharist_n contain_v or_o imply_v the_o negative_a that_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v transubstantiator_n into_o i_o may_v thus_o instance_n in_o many_o more_o our_o negatives_n be_v contain_v or_o imply●●_n in_o our_o affirmative_n which_o yo●_n hold_v or_o confess_v yourselves_o hatch_v 2._o i_o answer_v further_o that_o we_o have_v express_v negative_n also_o both_o in_o scripture_n and_o father_n in_o the_o main_a point_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n we_o have_v a_o plain_a thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o any_o graven_n image_n etc._n etc._n thou_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o nor_o worship_v they_o etc._n etc._n we_o have_v a_o plain_a i●_n the_o church_n i_o have_v rather_o speak_v five_o word_n with_o my_o understanding_n that_o i_o may_v teach_v other_o also_o the●_n ten_o thousand_o word_n in_o a_o tongue_n unknown_a 1_o cor._n 14.19_o we_o have_v a_o plain_a see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o for_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n rev._n 22.9_o and_o so_o of_o the_o chief_a difference_n through_o the_o rest_n 3._o if_o we_o have_v but_o this_o one_o point_n prove_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n it_o full_o warrant_v all_o our_o negative_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o papist_n for_o to_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v in_o scripture_n and_o
that_o this_o be_v sufficient_a will_v sure_o warrant_v as_o to_o exclude_v their_o addition_n and_o we_o have_v oft_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o age_n do_v maintain_v the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n this_o one_o answer_n do_v full_o justify_v we_o against_o this_o c●vil_n of_o the_o papist_n the_o ancient_a church_n and_o father_n believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o that_o scripture_n as_o contain_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o do_v we_o and_o so_o all_o popish_a faith_n be_v exclude_v though_o we_o confess_v many_o ceremony_n and_o point_n of_o order_n ●ere_z then_o admit_v as_o from_o the_o church_n 4._o negative_n become_v necessary_a to_o be_v express_o assert_v by_o occasion_n of_o heresy_n and_o therefore_o who_o ●an_v wonder_v if_o many_o of_o they_o be_v never_o mention_v till_o ●hose_v heresy_n do_v call_v they_o out_o when_o there_o be_v ●o_o man_n so_o impudent_a as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o ●ome_o be_v the_o universal_a bishop_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o that_o god_n must_v be_v worship_v in_o ●n_o unknown_a tongue_n or_o that_o image_n must_v be_v worship_v who_o can_v expect_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v occasion_n in_o word_n to_o express_v it_o as_o a_o part_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o universal_a bishop_n not_o infallible_a etc._n etc._n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n if_o popery_n have_v rise_v soon_o it_o have_v soon_o be_v contradict_v 5._o there_o may_v be_v a_o hundred_o negative_n make_v necessary_a hereafter_o by_o heresy_n which_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a now_o to_o put_v into_o our_o creed_n or_o confession_n because_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o sufficient_o contain_v or_o employ_v in_o the_o contrary_a affirmative_n if_o heretic_n arise_v that_o say_v that_o man_n have_v seven_o soul_n that_o the_o soul_n return_v to_o be_v god_n essence_n and_o be_v so_o eternal_o that_o there_o be_v fourteen_o sacrament_n that_o infant_n must_v take_v order_n with_o a_o hundred_o the_o like_a than_o it_o may_v be_v necessary_a for_o we_o express_o to_o deny_v these_o and_o shall_v they_o then_o tell_v we_o that_o our_o religion_n be_v new_a and_o they_o old_a because_o we_o can_v prove_v that_o any_o do_v before_o deny_v they_o so_o what_o if_o we_o can_v not_o prove_v that_o any_o before_o have_v say_v the_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o universal_a governor_n that_o be_v because_o there_o be_v none_o so_o shamless_a for_o six_o hundred_o year_n as_o to_o say_v he_o be_v who_o religion_n then_o be_v prove_v new_a by_o this_o we_o or_o they_o but_o i_o shall_v say_v somewhat_o more_o to_o this_o anon_o in_o the_o end_n obj._n 3._o that_o religion_n which_o can_v be_v know_v 〈◊〉_d have_v no_o certain_a test_n to_o discern_v it_o by_o can_v be_v no_o sa●●_n way_n to_o salvation_n but_o such_o be_v the_o reform_a religion_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v if_o they_o have_v any_o such_o test_n either_o it_o be_v scripture_n or_o so●●_n confession_n of_o their_o own_o but_o neither_o of_o these_o therefore_o not_o scripture_n for_o that_o be_v appeal_v to_o by_o many_o religion_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v no_o proper_a test_n to_o discern_v one_o of_o they_o from_o the_o rest_n beside_o it_o know_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o name_n of_o the_o refor●●●_n protestant_n religion_n not_o any_o confession_n for_o they_o have_v no_o one_o which_o they_o agree_v in_o but_o one_o disclaim_v what_o another_o ow_v and_o they_o have_v none_o agree_v on_o by_o a_o general_n council_n or_o by_o all_o themselves_o ans_fw-fr 1_o the_o test_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n this_o we_o profess_v joint_o to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o life_n to_o this_o we_o still_o appeal_v if_o we_o misunderstand_v it_o in_o any_o point_n we_o implicit_o renounce_v all_o such_o error_n because_o we_o explicit_o in_o general_n renounce_v all_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n this_o may_v be_v the_o true_a test_n of_o our_o religion_n though_o other_o false_o pre●end_v that_o they_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o it_o many_o thing_n may_v be_v try_v by_o the_o same_o touchstone_n and_o weigh_v by_o the_o same_o balance_n whereof_o some_o may_v be_v currant_n and_o other_o unfound_a or_o light_n may_v not_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n be_v the_o true_a rule_n of_o our_o obedience_n to_o our_o governor_n though_o in_o the_o rebellious_a or_o disobedient_a shall_v pretend_v to_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o same_o law_n 2._o they_o be_v not_o all_o distinct_a religion_n which_o the_o papist_n call_v so_o many_o appeal_n to_o the_o same_o scripture_n who_o agree_v in_o the_o main_a concern_v the_o sense_n and_o disagree_v only_o in_o some_o inferior_a thing_n these_o be_v not_o several_a religion_n 3._o our_o confession_n do_v show_v how_o we_o understand_v the_o scripture_n wherein_o we_o agree_v in_o the_o main_a as_o the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n testify_v though_o in_o some_o lesser_a thing_n we_o differ_v obj._n 4._o they_o that_o have_v causeless_o separate_v from_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o of_o the_o true_a religion_n nor_o in_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o so_o have_v the_o protestant_n do_v for_o they_o be_v divide_v both_o from_o roman_a church_n the_o greek_n abassine_n armenian_n and_o all_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o in_o a_o safe_a way_n ans_fw-fr it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o withdraw_v from_o some_o corruption_n of_o a_o church_n and_o another_o to_o withdraw_v from_o the_o church_n 1._o we_o that_o be_v now_o live_v do_v not_o withdraw_v from_o rome_n or_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n for_o we_o be_v never_o among_o you_o or_o under_o you_o 2._o our_o father_n withdraw_v not_o from_o the_o church_n as_o christian_a or_o catholic_a but_o from_o the_o particular_a corruption_n of_o the_o roman_a faction_n in_o doctrine_n discipline_n and_o worship_n reject_v their_o late_o usurp_a tyranny_n by_o which_o they_o will_v have_v still_o oblige_v they_o to_o sin_n against_o god_n as_o we_o be_v command_v to_o withdraw_v from_o each_o particular_a brother_n that_o walk_v disorderly_a so_o must_v we_o from_o a_o particular_a church_n when_o they_o will_v be_v so_o disorder_v as_o to_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o universal_a 3._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n reject_v we_o by_o a_o causeless_a excommunication_n who_o be_v not_o the_o jure_fw-la under_o her_o power_n 4._o we_o still_o profess_v ourselves_o of_o the_o same_o church_n with_o the_o greek_n abassine_n arminian_n copty_v and_o all_o other_o on_o earth_n that_o hold_v the_o scripture_n and_o that_o so_o hold_v the_o anticent_a creed_n or_o fundamental_o of_o christianity_n as_o that_o they_o do_v not_o evident_o subvert_v it_o again_o by_o contradictory_n error_n if_o they_o hold_v no_o error_n but_o what_o may_v consist_v with_o a_o true_a belief_n of_o the_o fundamental_o in_o the_o same_o person_n though_o by_o a_o unseen_a consequence_n they_o may_v contradict_v they_o we_o separate_v not_o from_o that_o church_n so_o as_o to_o disclaim_v it_o from_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o we_o so_o separate_v from_o all_o the_o world_n but_o as_o to_o the_o local_a personal_a communion_n or_o presence_n we_o dare_v not_o join_v with_o the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o least_o know_a sin_n but_o in_o that_o respect_n we_o can_v be_v say_v to_o separate_v from_o the_o greek_n or_o abassine_n that_o we_o have_v no_o opportunity_n of_o local_a communion_n with_o while_o all_o man_n be_v imperfect_a one_o may_v see_v that_o error_n which_o another_o see_v not_o and_o to_o separate_v mere_o from_o a_o sin_n of_o one_o man_n or_o a_o church_n be_v not_o simple_o to_o separate_v from_o the_o man_n or_o church_n obj._n 5._o that_o religion_n which_o have_v no_o unity_n in_o itself_o or_o consistency_n but_o be_v break_v into_o many_o sect_n and_o still_o run_v further_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o such_o be_v the_o protestant_a religion_n therefore_o answ_n we_o deny_v the_o minor_n our_o religion_n be_v one_o simple_o one_o and_o most_o consistent_a and_o have_v one_o sure_a stand_a rule_n not_o subject_a to_o change_n as_o you_o be_v even_o the_o word_n of_o god_n himself_o the_o same_o rule_n that_o the_o first_o church_n have_v and_o the_o same_o test_n by_o which_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v know_v of_o old_a when_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o particular_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o the_o actual_a communion_n with_o the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o test_n of_o a_o catholic_a the_o one_o in_o doctrine_n the_o other_o in_o communion_n as_o free_v he_o from_o schism_n we_o believe_v all_o the_o same_o article_n and_o we_o divide_v not_o from_o the_o
baptism_n pardon_v it_o by_o way_n of_o obsignation_n and_o solemn_a conveyance_n but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o your_o error_n that_o original_a sin_n be_v not_o only_o remit_v but_o quite_o extinct_a or_o do_v away_o out_o of_o our_o nature_n by_o baptism_n so_o that_o the_o new_a baptize_v infant_n be_v perfect_o without_o any_o radical_a sin_n as_o well_o as_o without_o the_o gild_n of_o it_o 4._o he_o say_v they_o say_v that_o work_n do_v justify_v with_o faith_n you_o not_o repl._n they_o say_v that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n but_o by_o the_o alone_a merit_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o do_v we_o we_o deny_v not_o in_o every_o sense_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_a for_o in_o james_n his_o sense_n we_o maintain_v it_o else_o we_o shall_v deny_v the_o scripture_n the_o question_n be_v not_o therefore_o absolute_o whether_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n but_o in_o what_o sense_n we_o be_v and_o in_o what_o not_o we_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a satisfier_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o meriter_fw-la of_o righteousness_n and_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o only_o receive_v condition_n and_o that_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n that_o paul_n exclude_v have_v no_o hand_n in_o it_o and_o that_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n which_o james_n take_v in_o be_v but_o condition_n without_o which_o our_o justification_n begin_v without_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v continue_v and_o of_o our_o final_a absolution_n or_o justification_n in_o judgement_n and_o so_o be_v but_o a_o particular_a and_o not_o a_o universal_a or_o legal_a righteousness_n of_o which_o i_o have_v give_v a_o full_a account_n in_o my_o confession_n 5._o he_o say_v they_o maintain_v freewill_n even_o in_o the_o best_a action_n you_o not_o repl._n freewill_n be_v either_o 1._o natural_a which_o be_v but_o its_o self-determining_a power_n with_o spontaneity_n and_o this_o we_o deny_v not_o for_o who_o deny_v man_n to_o be_v man_n and_o to_o have_v the_o facultatem_fw-la volendi_fw-la or_o it_o be_v 2._o moral_a and_o that_o be_v 1._o political_n when_o a_o governor_n give_v the_o subject_a leave_n to_o do_v a_o thing_n and_o so_o we_o maintain_v that_o god_n give_v our_o will_n freedom_n to_o all_o good_a and_o to_o no_o evil_a or_o 2._o ethical_a which_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o right_a inclination_n and_o habit_n of_o the_o will_n with_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o contrary_a habit_n and_o so_o we_o say_v that_o the_o better_a man_n be_v the_o free_a that_o be_v the_o better_a be_v their_o will_n and_o the_o unconvert_v have_v not_o this_o freewill_n nor_o the_o convert_v in_o perfection_n till_o they_o come_v to_o glory_n for_o the_o freedom_n be_v the_o goodness_n and_o see_v the_o will_v so_o far_o free_a ethical_o as_o it_o be_v good_a virtuous_a or_o holy_a the_o question_n than_o be_v whether_o every_o man_n will_v be_v good_a and_o holy_a which_o i_o be_o conceit_v you_o will_v not_o dare_v to_o affirm_v a_o covetous_a man_n a_o drunkard_n ●●_o ungodly_a man_n be_v as_o much_o or_o more_o denominate_v such_o from_o the_o habit_n as_o from_o the_o act_n he_o be_v most_o vicious_a that_o be_v habitual_o so_o to_o say_v therefore_o that_o such_o a_o man_n will_n be_v free_a in_o this_o ethical_a sense_n be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v habitual_o no_o covetous_a man_n no_o drunkard_n no_o ungodly_a man_n no_o sinner_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o unquestionable_a experience_n i_o think_v shall_v be_v easy_o desert_v if_o you_o know_v of_o any_o thing_n else_o call_v freewill_n beside_o these_o three_o before_o mention_v we_o shall_v be_v glad_a to_o know_v it_o too_o the_o natural_a essential_a freedom_n viz._n a_o spontaneous_a self-determining_a power_n we_o all_o confess_v the_o political_a freedom_n yea_o and_o obligation_n none_o deny_v the_o ethical_a freedom_n that_o be_v virtuous_a or_o holy_a inclination_n in_o wicked_a man_n you_o will_v deny_v yourselves_o where_o then_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o either_o the_o greek_n or_o you_o why_o you_o will_v say_v perhaps_o that_o it_o be_v here_o that_o we_o deny_v the_o will_n to_o have_v that_o indifferency_n which_o you_o affirm_v as_o to_o opposite_a object_n but_o we_o be_v loath_a to_o sight_n with_o you_o in_o the_o dark_a do_v you_o mean_v by_o indifferency_n a_o indifferency_n of_o natural_a power_n or_o a_o indifferency_n of_o inclination_n or_o habit_n the_o first_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o will_n be_v a_o natural_a faculty_n that_o have_v natural_o no_o determination_n to_o one_o where_o many_o mean_n be_v propound_v but_o be_v undetermined_a and_o have_v a_o natural_a power_n to_o determine_v itself_o to_o either_o but_o yet_o you_o know_v the_o will_n natural_a power_n be_v exercise_v according_a to_o incline_v object_n and_o habit_n and_o you_o can_v expect_v that_o man_n who_o be_v habitual_o in●ined_v earthwards_o shall_v will_v heavenly_a thing_n and_o ●●nounce_v earthly_a thing_n mere_o because_o they_o have_v a_o natural_a power_n of_o choose_v for_o they_o want_v that_o in●●ination_n which_o be_v call_v common_o the_o moral_a ●ower_n and_o i_o shall_v suppose_v that_o in_o regard_n of_o this_o ●oral_a power_n you_o will_v not_o affirm_v yourselves_o that_o he_o ●ath_v indifferentiam_fw-la ad_fw-la oppositum_fw-la to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n ●ill_n be_v indifferent_o incline_v to_o good_a and_o to_o evil_a ●_o to_o say_v that_o the_o man_n be_v habitual_o neither_o good_a nor_o ●ad_n unless_o as_o privation_n of_o due_a inclination_n denominate_v he_o bad_a i_o say_v the_o more_o of_o this_o it_o because_o i_o find_v other_o of_o your_o party_n and_o ●ome_v that_o seem_v to_o disow_v both_o you_o and_o we_o as_o a_o late_a treatise_n of_o repentance_n among_o other_o can_v witness_v ●o_o harp_v so_o much_o on_o this_o string_n and_o confuse_o talk_v ●f_a freewill_n before_o they_o tell_v we_o what_o they_o mean_v and_o ●o_o persuade_v the_o world_n that_o we_o teach_v that_o god_n have_v ●aid_v such_o a_o natural_a necessity_n on_o man_n to_o sin_n as_o he_o have_v ●o_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o sleep_v and_o that_o god_n may_v as_o well_o damn_v man_n for_o be_v hungry_a or_o sleepy_a as_o for_o be_v sinful_a in_o our_o sense_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o more_o faultiness_n in_o a_o vicious_a disposition_n of_o the_o will_n itself_o then_o in_o a_o necessary_a natural_a inclination_n or_o appetite_n of_o those_o faculty_n which_o be_v never_o make_v to_o rule_v themselves_o but_o to_o be_v moderate_v by_o the_o will_n of_o reason_n it_o may_v be_v these_o man_n will_v either_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o they_o that_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v evil_a can_v learn_v to_o do_v well_o no_o more_o than_o a_o leopard_n can_v change_v his_o spot_n or_o a_o blackamoor_n his_o skin_n or_o else_o they_o will_v think_v such_o man_n excusable_a because_o they_o be_v so_o strong_o incline_v to_o evil_a and_o so_o if_o a_o man_n habituate_v to_o lust_n shall_v vitiate_v their_o wife_n or_o a_o man_n habituate_v to_o malice_n shall_v beat_v they_o often_o or_o maim_v they_o or_o kill_v their_o friend_n they_o may_v think_v that_o he_o deserve_v 〈◊〉_d punishment_n but_o pity_n because_o he_o be_v so_o bad_a that_o 〈◊〉_d can_v not_o moral_o that_o be_v he_o will_v not_o 〈◊〉_d it_o but_o they_o say_v we_o teach_v that_o man_n will_n have_v a_o necessity_n of_o sin_v impose_v on_o they_o but_o we_o h●●●_n learn_v that_o habit_n do_v not_o determine_v the_o will_n national_o nor_o always_o infallible_o but_o leave_v it_o free_a to_o a_o ●●tural_a self-determination_n but_o yet_o we_o know_v that_o 〈◊〉_d ordinary_o determine_v itself_o according_a to_o predominant_a habit_n and_o there_o must_v be_v somewhat_o extraordinary_a to_o procure_v the_o will_n to_o determine_v itself_o 〈◊〉_d good_a where_o it_o be_v habitual_o incline_v to_o evil_a so_o much_o may_v serve_v to_o vindicate_v our_o doctrine_n about_o freewill_n and_o as_o for_o the_o cause_n of_o its_o captivity_n it_o belong_v no●_n to_o this_o subject_n to_o speak_v of_o it_o but_o to_o that_o of_o original_a sin_n where_o the_o say_a doctor_n so_o notable_o play_v his_o part_n to_o which_o we_o shall_v not_o now_o digress_v the_o next_o instance_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v this_o they_o i●●_n the_o greek_n maintain_v seven_o sacrament_n you_o not_o repl._n 1_o this_o be_v another_o very_a immodest_a untruth_n i_o wonder_v that_o man_n dare_v venture_v their_o soul_n upon_o a_o religion_n that_o must_v be_v thus_o uphold_v by_o falsehood_n your_o own_o writer_n before_o allege_v witness_v that_o the_o greek_n deny_v the_o very_a use_n of_o confirmation_n and_o extreme_a unction_n and_o how_o then_o can_v they_o account_v they_o sacrament_n nor_o
image_n they_o elevate_v not_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o reserve_v it_o after_o communion_n their_o priest_n labour_n but_o beg_v not_o the_o emperor_n confer_v bishopric_n and_o benefice_n they_o use_v no_o confirmation_n nor_o extreme_a unction_n they_o admit_v a_o first_o marriage_n in_o bishop_n and_o priest_n they_o eat_v flesh_n on_o friday_n and_o yet_o this_o man_n say_v they_o differ_v not_o from_o they_o the_o second_o chapter_n be_v the_o mere_a ebullition_n of_o foolish_a malice_n deserve_v no_o reply_n to_o those_o that_o do_v not_o desire_v to_o be_v deceive_v he_o will_v prove_v that_o according_a to_o these_o lax_n principle_n of_o our_o charity_n we_o may_v agree_v with_o jew_n turk_n mahometan_n as_o if_o we_o need_v a_o dispute_n to_o prove_v that_o these_o be_v no_o christian_n and_o that_o the_o greek_n abassine_n etc._n etc._n be_v but_o such_o dispute_n do_v the_o papist_n put_v we_o upon_o the_o bishop_n have_v conclude_v in_o his_o sermon_n that_o if_o we_o shall_v survey_v the_o several_a profession_n of_o christianity_n that_o have_v any_o large_a spread_v in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o put_v by_o the_o point_n wherein_o they_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o and_o gather_v into_o one_o body_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o article_n wherein_o all_o general_o agree_v we_o shall_v find_v so_o much_o truth_n in_o they_o as_o be_v join_v with_o holy_a obedience_n may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v a_o man_n to_o everlasting_a salvation_n neither_o have_v we_o cause_n to_o doubt_v but_o as_o many_o as_o do_v walk_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n neither_o overthrow_v that_o which_o they_o have_v build_v by_o superinduce_v any_o damnable_a heresy_n thereupon_o nor_o otherwise_o vitiate_a their_o holy_a faith_n with_o a_o lewd_a and_o wicked_a conversation_n peace_n shall_v be_v upon_o they_o and_o mercy_n and_o upon_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n and_o what_o have_v the_o confuter_n to_o say_v against_o this_o why_o first_o he_o begin_v with_o the_o sacrament_n to_o try_v whether_o those_o common_o agree_v on_o may_v save_v and_o here_o he_o first_o tell_v we_o that_o some_o church_n be_v for_o seven_o some_o for_o three_o and_o some_o for_o two_o use_v no_o more_o therefore_o here_o be_v no_o agreement_n rep._n 1._o le●_n the_o nominal_a difference_n about_o the_o word_n sacrament_n be_v first_o lay_v by_o unless_o you_o think_v that_o word_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v the_o better_o see_v what_o real_a difference_n remain_v 2._o the_o two_o sacrament_n than_o be_v confess_v by_o all_o and_o the_o use_n of_o the_o rest_n which_o you_o call_v sacrament_n this_o much_o in_o its_o own_o place_n then_o may_v save_v where_o no_o more_o be_v confess_v 3._o you_o vain_o put_v in_o the_o exclusion_n of_o more_o for_o that_o be_v none_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o all_o agree_v on_o all_o agree_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n and_o those_o may_v save_v but_o all_o agree_v not_o that_o there_o be_v but_o two_o this_o man_n therefore_o seem_v to_o dote_v when_o he_o shall_v gather_v up_o the_o common_a agreement_n according_a to_o the_o bishop_n proposal_n he_o gather_v up_o the_o disagreement_n or_o vain_o pretend_v that_o we_o agree_v in_o nothing_o what_o do_v not_o you_o confess_v that_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v sacrament_n and_o do_v not_o we_o do_v so_o too_o next_o he_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o baptism_n and_o say_v that_o the_o roman_n and_o greek_n say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o use_n of_o baptism_n but_o to_o wash_v away_o sin_n the_o protestant_n of_o england_n and_o geneva_n say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n at_o all_o but_o only_o a_o seal_n of_o god_n promise_v make_v to_o the_o party_n baptize_v and_o that_o the_o child_n unbaptise_v may_v be_v save_v and_o the_o baptize_v damn_v repl._n 1_o you_o make_v yourselves_o much_o more_o the_o greek_n worse_o than_o you_o be_v do_v not_o your_o own_o maintain_v that_o baptism_n admit_v into_o the_o church_n and_o grant_v many_o other_o privilege_n beside_o wash_v away_o sin_n 2._o we_o say_v that_o to_o the_o child_n of_o promise_n it_o do_v secondary_o and_o by_o obsignation_n wash_v away_o or_o pardon_n sin_n by_o way_n of_o obsignation_n and_o solemn_a exhibition_n as_o the_o promise_n do_v primary_o as_o a_o deed_n of_o gift_n or_o legal_a grant_n as_o also_o that_o in_o the_o same_o way_n it_o secondary_o convey_v further_a grace_n according_a to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o subject_n and_o admit_v into_o the_o church_n and_o all_o this_o be_v common_o confess_v by_o yourselves_o and_o all_o christian_n of_o the_o greek_a or_o abassine_a church_n etc._n etc._n this_o much_o alone_a without_o your_o addition_n be_v as_o much_o at_o least_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v believe_v concern_v baptism_n next_o he_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o say_v that_o one_o party_n hold_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o other_o not_o and_o what_o of_o this_o do_v that_o prove_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o what_o all_o be_v agree_v on_o what_o we_o hold_v you_o deny_v not_o we_o hold_v the_o signify_v and_o seal_v and_o exhibit_v use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n though_o we_o deny_v transubstantiation_n and_o dare_v you_o deny_v these_o we_o hold_v that_o it_o be_v the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n offer_v once_o on_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o mean_n of_o church-communion_n and_o dare_v you_o deny_v these_o lay_v by_o your_o addition_n and_o that_o which_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v in_o be_v enough_o to_o salvation_n his_o next_o instance_n be_v about_o faith_n because_o we_o say_v that_o historical_a faith_n may_v be_v in_o devil_n and_o miraculous_a faith_n in_o the_o wicked_a and_o calvin_n define_v justify_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o firm_a and_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o we_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o lutheran_n that_o it_o be_v a_o undoubted_a persuasion_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o adoption_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o faith_n be_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n condemn_v to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n therefore_o he_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o save_v faith_n common_a to_o papist_n and_o protestant_n repl._n here_o again_o you_o vain_o and_o fallacious_o bring_v in_o the_o disagreement_n and_o over_o pass_v the_o agreement_n 1._o we_o be_v agree_v that_o all_o those_o which_o the_o protestant_n call_v the_o canonical_a book_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o true_a and_o particular_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o many_o thing_n more_o we_o be_v agree_v that_o christ_n and_o life_n be_v offer_v by_o the_o universal_a promise_n in_o the_o gospel_n to_o all_o that_o hear_v it_o and_o that_o all_o must_v first_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o promise_n and_o then_o hearty_o consent_v to_o the_o offer_n and_o accept_v the_o benefit_n and_o also_o believe_v and_o fear_v the_o threaten_a and_o join_v sincere_a love_n and_o obedience_n to_o all_o this_o this_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v in_o and_o this_o be_v certain_o save_v to_o all_o that_o sincere_o believe_v and_o do_v as_o they_o thus_o profess_v but_o then_o whether_o historical_a faith_n be_v common_a or_o not_o whether_o assurance_n or_o strong_a persuasion_n of_o pardon_n be_v faith_n or_o justify_v faith_n with_o other_o the_o like_a these_o we_o be_v not_o agree_v in_o and_o without_o these_o we_o may_v be_v save_v the_o next_o exception_n be_v only_o this_o the_o bishop_n tell_v we_o not_o what_o be_v those_o heresy_n that_o destroy_v this_o common_a faith_n rep._n and_o do_v that_o cross_a his_o former_a charitable_a conclusion_n what_o because_o he_o undertake_v not_o a_o alien_a task_n why_o in_o general_a they_o be_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v so_o hold_v as_o that_o the_o common_a article_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v hold_v with_o it_o and_o that_o practical_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o next_o passage_n be_v this_o that_o be_v absurd_a for_o we_o to_o call_v they_o the_o true_a church_n or_o say_v they_o may_v be_v save_v when_o we_o have_v charge_v they_o with_o so_o much_o error_n and_o idolatry_n &c_n &c_n repl._n 1_o we_o only_o say_v that_o you_o be_v a_o pollute_a part_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o if_o your_o salvation_n be_v make_v so_o difficult_a by_o your_o error_n look_v you_o to_o that_o the_o bishop_n conclusion_n of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o communiter_fw-la credita_fw-la be_v nevertheless_o sound_a though_o you_o destroy_v yourselves_o by_o your_o corrupt_a addition_n 3._o multitude_n among_o you_o believe_v not_o your_o infallibility_n transubstantiation_n and_o many_o the_o like_a error_n 4._o many_o that_o behold_v they_o as_o opinion_n
or_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v true_a bishop_n and_o lawful_o call_v if_o as_o bellarmine_n say_v the_o council_n l._n 2._o c._n 9_o that_o the_o contrary_a be_v not_o manifest_a be_v enough_o then_o man_n error_n can_v make_v god_n promise_n of_o infallibility_n belong_v to_o those_o that_o it_o be_v never_o make_v to_o or_o else_o god_n have_v promise_v infallibility_n to_o all_o that_o may_v be_v pope_n or_o bishop_n for_o aught_o we_o know_v and_o then_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o bishop_n but_o to_o all_o that_o seem_v such_o 25._o yea_o that_o all_o those_o bishop_n or_o most_o descend_v by_o uninterrupted_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v make_v necessary_a if_o they_o plead_v only_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succession_n to_o warrant_v all_o the_o rest_n before_o the_o forementioned_a particular_n be_v well_o answer_v it_o will_v appear_v that_o rome_n succession_n have_v be_v frequent_o interrupt_v 26._o how_o shall_v man_n at_o a_o distance_n be_v sure_a that_o the_o council_n be_v indeed_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n 27._o how_o shall_v we_o be_v sure_a when_o all_o be_v do_v that_o we_o have_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o canon_n or_o decree_n of_o such_o council_n when_o they_o speak_v as_o ambiguous_o as_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o papist_n think_v they_o can_v have_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o right_a sense_n of_o that_o without_o a_o live_a judge_n and_o if_o there_o be_v a_o live_a judge_n still_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o council_n either_o he_o be_v as_o infallible_a as_o they_o or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o he_o can_v make_v we_o infallible_o certain_a by_o his_o authoritative_a determination_n if_o he_o be_v then_o what_o need_v of_o a_o council_n when_o he_o be_v infallible_a alone_o 28._o when_o several_a pope_n and_o council_n contradict_v one_o another_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v which_o of_o they_o to_o believe_v and_o this_o be_v no_o rare_a matter_n among_o they_o 29._o when_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n contradict_v each_o other_o how_o shall_v the_o people_n know_v which_o be_v infallible_a 30._o when_o both_o pope_n and_o council_n contradict_v the_o express_a scripture_n must_v we_o take_v they_o for_o infallible_a and_o believe_v that_o scripture_n only_o on_o their_o word_n these_o or_o most_o of_o these_o must_v be_v know_v by_o all_o christian_n before_o they_o can_v believe_v the_o article_n of_o their_o creed_n or_o that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n according_a to_o the_o romish_a ground_n when_o as_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o man_n to_o know_v they_o as_o true_a they_o be_v either_o false_a or_o not_o evident_a and_o demonstrable_a so_o that_o it_o be_v now_o apparent_a that_o according_a to_o the_o popish_a ground_n the_o people_n can_v have_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o that_o they_o shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o christianity_n itself_o 2._o and_o last_o not_o only_o so_o but_o they_o build_v on_o a_o foundation_n certain_o false_a that_o be_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n or_o a_o council_n as_o i_o shall_v prove_v in_o the_o next_o dispute_n where_o their_o fallibility_n will_v be_v further_o manifest_v arg._n 3._o if_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o agree_v among_o themselves_o either_o clergy_n or_o laity_n about_o the_o very_a fundamental_o of_o their_o faith_n or_o matter_n which_o they_o make_v of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n than_o popery_n be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n we_o need_v to_o go_v no_o further_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o antecedent_n then_o to_o what_o be_v say_v already_o they_o common_o maintain_v that_o we_o must_v receive_v our_o faith_n and_o the_o scripture_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o infallible_a church_n and_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o agree_v among_o themselves_o nor_o ever_o like_a to_o be_v what_o that_o infallible_a church_n be_v and_o the_o difference_n be_v not_o with_o a_o few_o inconsiderable_a dissenter_n but_o in_o their_o main_a body_n the_o papist_n of_o france_n maintain_v that_o it_o be_v a_o general_n council_n that_o be_v infallible_a and_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v fallible_a the_o italian_n maintain_v that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v fallible_a and_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a some_o other_o think_v that_o both_o of_o they_o be_v fallible_a separate_v but_o both_o infallible_a when_o they_o concur_v and_o some_o think_v that_o they_o be_v both_o infallible_a though_o separate_v if_o the_o church_n be_v the_o foundation_n and_o all_o must_v be_v receive_v upon_o its_o infallible_a authority_n than_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v that_o know_v not_o which_o this_o infallible_a church_n be_v either_o therefore_o the_o french_a or_o italian_n one_o part_n or_o the_o other_o of_o they_o do_v err_v in_o their_o very_a fundamental_o when_o one_o say_v this_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o infallibility_n and_o the_o other_o say_v this_o be_v it_o and_o if_o a_o pope_n or_o general_n council_n differ_v to_o who_o must_v the_o people_n hearken_v one_o part_n of_o they_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n and_o other_o of_o they_o say_v the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o this_o mind_n have_v be_v general_a council_n themselves_o as_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o constance_n and_o of_o this_o mind_n bellarmine_n name_n cardinal_n cameracensis_n cardinal_n cusanus_fw-la joh._n gerson_n jac._n almain_n card._n florentin_n panormitan_n etc._n etc._n what_o a_o strange_a impudence_n than_o be_v it_o of_o these_o man_n to_o make_v the_o silly_a delude_a people_n among_o we_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v all_o of_o one_o mind_n and_o it_o be_v we_o that_o be_v divide_v when_o as_o they_o be_v never_o likely_a to_o agree_v in_o their_o very_a principle_n and_o great_a fundamental_a who_o it_o be_v that_o be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n and_o till_o man_n know_v who_o it_o be_v what_o the_o better_a be_v they_o know_v that_o such_o a_o judge_n there_o be_v see_v that_o the_o species_n exi_v only_o in_o the_o individual_a and_o no_o man_n can_v believe_v he_o or_o apply_v himself_o to_o he_o as_o the_o infallible_a judge_n till_o he_o know_v that_o it_o be_v he_o indeed_o that_o be_v such_o see_v then_o according_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n either_o the_o french_a papist_n or_o the_o italian_a and_o spanish_a papist_n must_v be_v in_o the_o way_n to_o damnation_n how_o shall_v we_o know_v which_o it_o be_v and_o which_o to_o join_v ourselves_o to_o with_o any_o safety_n be_v it_o not_o for_o weaken_v the_o pope_n interest_n they_o will_v burn_v the_o french_a papist_n as_o heretic_n as_o well_o as_o we_o arg._n 4._o if_o popery_n be_v a_o new_a devise_v way_n to_o heaven_n such_o as_o the_o apostle_n never_o know_v nor_o the_o church_n after_o they_o for_o many_o a_o hundred_o year_n in_o the_o main_a part_n of_o popery_n then_o be_v it_o no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a therefore_o so_o be_v the_o consequent_a the_o consequence_n they_o will_v not_o deny_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o primitive_a church_n go_v in_o be_v only_o the_o safe_a way_n to_o heaven_n for_o there_o be_v not_o many_o safe_a way_n but_o that_o which_o the_o papist_n as_o papist_n go_v in_o be_v not_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n go_v in_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o safe_a way_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o first_o church_n know_v not_o popery_n but_o it_o be_v a_o new_a religion_n or_o new_a corruption_n of_o religion_n appear_v by_o compare_v the_o particular_a point_n with_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n for_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o true_a antiquity_n it_o may_v give_v any_o indifferent_a man_n just_a cause_n of_o suspicion_n that_o the_o papist_n do_v so_o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o be_v try_v by_o it_o which_o plain_o show_v that_o they_o take_v it_o not_o to_o be_v on_o their_o side_n and_o for_o the_o council_n and_o father_n for_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n or_o much_o more_o they_o ordinary_o scorn_v we_o for_o mention_v they_o to_o this_o end_n because_o they_o say_v they_o write_v not_o of_o the_o point_n now_o in_o controversy_n and_o therefore_o be_v unfit_a to_o determine_v they_o but_o do_v not_o those_o age_n take_v up_o their_o faith_n on_o the_o same_o ground_n as_o we_o shall_v do_v now_o and_o can_v they_o be_v all_o silent_a about_o the_o only_a ground_n of_o faith_n if_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n infallible_a authority_n have_v be_v the_o ground_n will_v they_o not_o have_v tell_v we_o so_o how_o can_v they_o convert_v the_o infidel_n and_o confirm_v believer_n without_o acquaint_v they_o with_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o what_o they_o take_v for_o the_o ground_n their_o write_n
the_o apostle_n the_o three_o be_v that_o which_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o through_o all_o time_n past_a be_v deserve_o judge_v to_o have_v be_v institute_v by_o the_o apostle_n though_o it_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o the_o church_n may_v institute_v the_o four_o be_v when_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v with_o one_o consent_n teach_v that_o such_o a_o thing_n descend_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n either_o congregate_v in_o a_o general_n council_n or_o write_v it_o apart_o in_o book_n this_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v a_o apostolic_a tradition_n the_o five_o rule_n be_v this_o that_o be_v without_o doubt_n to_o be_v believe_v to_o descend_v from_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o be_v hold_v for_o such_o in_o those_o church_n where_o the_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v entire_a and_o continue_a these_o be_v bellarmine_n five_o rule_n but_o 1._o what_o the_o particular_a apostolical_a tradition_n be_v which_o be_v god_n word_n according_a to_o these_o rule_n he_o have_v more_o wit_n or_o less_o honesty_n then_o to_o let_v we_o understand_v be_v it_o because_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v indeed_o yet_o unknown_a or_o can_v be_v know_v or_o because_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o make_v it_o know_v or_o because_o the_o pope_n must_v pretend_v to_o the_o keep_n of_o these_o hide_a law_n that_o so_o the_o world_n may_v receive_v they_o at_o his_o mouth_n 2._o and_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v whether_o these_o rule_n of_o bellarmine_n to_o know_v the_o unwritten_a word_n by_o be_v themselves_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o not_o if_o they_o be_v be_v they_o write_v or_o unwritten_a and_o how_o know_v to_o be_v so_o if_o not_o than_o it_o seem_v we_o may_v have_v rule_n and_o mean_n which_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o may_v infallible_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o then_o there_o need_v no_o unwritten_a word_n to_o deliver_v or_o prove_v the_o write_a word_n 3._o and_o why_o may_v not_o another_o doctor_n by_o these_o rule_n know_v the_o unwritten_a word_n as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n and_o another_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o roman_a 4._o and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o christian_a people_n through_o the_o world_n procure_v from_o some_o one_o charitable_a pope_n through_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n a_o catalogue_n of_o those_o unwritten_a verity_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v be_v once_o common_o know_v and_o man_n may_v know_v when_o they_o have_v all_o without_o uncertain_a dependency_n on_o the_o pope_n or_o travail_v in_o vain_a to_o rome_n to_o know_v 5._o and_o for_o those_o few_o that_o bellarmine_n have_v instance_a in_o viz._n the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n the_o validity_n of_o heretic_n baptism_n the_o fast_a of_o lent_n the_o inferior_a order_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o veneration_n of_o image_n to_o the_o first_o i_o say_v it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o divine_a faith_n but_o of_o humane_a ecclesiastical_a the_o second_o be_v prove_v full_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o so_o be_v the_o three_o if_o you_o take_v it_o of_o such_o heretic_n in_o a_o large_a sense_n as_o express_o exclude_v nothing_o essential_a to_o baptism_n but_o express_o include_v it_o all_o but_o for_o the_o rest_n bellarmine_n shall_v remember_v how_o elsewhere_o he_o defend_v the_o council_n that_o require_v the_o rebaptise_v of_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o the_o paulinist_n because_o they_o be_v antitrinitarians_a for_o lent_n i_o say_v no_o more_o can_v be_v prove_v of_o it_o but_o only_o that_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a constitution_n and_o the_o inferior_a order_n be_v apparent_o novelty_n introduce_v after_o the_o first_o age_n if_o not_o the_o second_o too_o and_o not_o mention_v in_o any_o of_o the_o first_o writer_n but_o the_o sum_n of_o church_n officer_n enumerate_v without_o they_o much_o more_o novel_a be_v the_o unlawful_a use_n of_o image_n in_o church_n or_o as_o immediate_a instrument_n to_o excite_v devotion_n in_o prayer_n and_o for_o other_o lawful_a use_n we_o deny_v it_o not_o 6._o but_o principal_o i_o will_v entreat_v bellarmine_n and_o the_o pope_n that_o hereafter_o they_o will_v obtrude_v no_o unwritten_a word_n upon_o we_o but_o what_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v such_o at_o least_o by_o his_o own_o rule_n let_v we_o have_v some_o proof_n that_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o not_o their_o naked_a word_n without_o evidence_n and_o then_o we_o must_v entreat_v they_o to_o be_v so_o honest_a as_o not_o to_o unchurch_n the_o greek_n abassine_n armenian_n protestant_n and_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n except_o romanist_n that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n and_o then_o prove_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o their_o own_o testimony_n alone_o nor_o yet_o to_o persuade_v we_o that_o such_o a_o council_n as_o they_o at_o trent_n contain_v the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n real_a or_o representative_a nor_o yet_o to_o bring_v we_o two_o or_o three_o father_n and_o say_v that_o those_o be_v all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n more_o particular_o i_o answer_v to_o his_o rule_n in_o order_n to_o the_o first_o i_o say_v 1._o that_o prove_v if_o you_o can_v that_o ever_o the_o whole_a church_n embrace_v any_o thing_n as_o a_o point_n of_o divine_a faith_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o write_a word_n 2._o if_o the_o whole_a church_n embrace_v it_o than_o it_o be_v no_o secret_a and_o therefore_o we_o all_o may_v know_v it_o yea_o and_o actual_o do_v know_v it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o second_o rule_n i_o say_v you_o may_v prove_v a_o mistake_a observance_n of_o rite_n by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o prove_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n keep_v any_o thing_n unwritten_a which_o none_o can_v constitute_v but_o god_n but_o if_o they_o do_v still_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v know_v to_o all_o and_o therefore_o not_o controvertible_a or_o lock_v up_o in_o the_o pope_n closet_n prove_v also_o that_o the_o universal_a church_n may_v not_o err_v in_o some_o lesser_a matter_n about_o christ_n suppose_a constitution_n to_o the_o three_o i_o say_v if_o by_o all_o time_n pass_v you_o include_v the_o apostle_n than_o we_o grant_v your_o rule_n but_o mere_a ecclesiastical_a canon_n may_v be_v observe_v through_o all_o time_n short_o after_o the_o apostle_n and_o yet_o not_o as_o apostolical_a but_o ecclesiastical_a yet_o when_o you_o come_v to_o try_v your_o tradition_n by_o this_o rule_n i_o be_o not_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o you_o will_v but_o disgrace_v they_o and_o fail_v your_o reader_n just_a expectation_n to_o the_o four_o i_o say_v 1._o i_o will_v believe_v you_o if_o you_o speak_v of_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n next_o to_o the_o apostle_n or_o so_o near_o as_o that_o the_o danger_n of_o mistake_v be_v not_o great_a 2._o but_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o you_o will_v find_v any_o of_o your_o tradition_n assert_v to_o be_v god_n word_n by_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n not_o near_o all_o in_o any_o one_o age_n unless_o you_o make_v your_o faction_n to_o be_v all_o the_o last_o rule_n be_v but_o a_o mere_a trick_n of_o wit_n to_o get_v the_o key_n into_o the_o pope_n hand_n alone_o to_o which_o i_o say_v 1._o a_o church_n that_o have_v have_v a_o interrupt_a succession_n of_o true_a pastor_n from_o the_o apostle_n may_v fall_v into_o many_o error_n in_o process_n of_o time_n which_o in_o tertullia_n and_o irenaeus_n day_n when_o the_o memory_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n practice_n be_v so_o fresh_a they_o can_v not_o fall_v into_o so_o easy_o 2._o those_o church_n have_v receive_v their_o unwritten_a verity_n either_o by_o write_n from_o their_o predecessor_n or_o without_o if_o by_o write_n why_o can_v other_o find_v it_o there_o as_o well_o as_o they_o if_o without_o it_o must_v be_v a_o uncertain_a and_o mutable_a mean_n or_o by_o a_o mean_n so_o public_a still_o that_o all_o as_o well_o as_o they_o may_v know_v of_o it_o 3._o and_o we_o undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o succession_n of_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o romish_a see_v have_v be_v long_o ago_o and_o often_o interrupt_v and_o therefore_o this_o rule_n will_v not_o serve_v your_o turn_n but_o though_o i_o have_v be_v long_o upon_o this_o principle_n of_o the_o papist_n to_o prove_v the_o uncertainty_n of_o their_o faith_n yet_o the_o next_o be_v the_o chief_a that_o i_o intend_v which_o also_o prove_v the_o mutability_n of_o it_o 2._o the_o papist_n ordinary_o hold_v that_o as_o to_o we_o that_o be_v god_n word_n which_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o clergy_n say_v be_v god_n word_n
supplication_n and_o holiness_n within_o he_o and_o have_v know_v by_o experience_n what_o it_o be_v to_o walk_v with_o god_n and_o offer_v he_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o token_n of_o his_o acceptance_n and_o approbation_n arg._n 11._o if_o popery_n be_v maintain_v common_o by_o most_o wicked_a and_o abominable_a mean_n and_o so_o by_o the_o devil_n than_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v too_o true_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n i_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o the_o mere_a miscarriage_n of_o some_o of_o their_o party_n but_o of_o the_o pillar_n by_o which_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n be_v support_v which_o that_o it_o be_v by_o abominable_a wickedness_n i_o shal●_n give_v you_o but_o these_o few_o instance_n follow_v 1._o the_o very_a business_n or_o prize_n which_o they_o so_o much_o contend_v for_o be_v pomp_n greatness_n dominion_n yea_o tyranny_n in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_o pride_n vainglory_n and_o covetousness_n that_o set_v they_o on_o and_o be_v the_o spring_n of_o all_o their_o contest_v what_o be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o quarrel_n but_o whether_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n of_o one_o city_n even_o rome_n shall_v be_v the_o ruler_n and_o master_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o all_o prince_n and_o people_n obey_v they_o what_o unprejudiced_a man_n can_v be_v so_o blind_a as_o not_o to_o see_v that_o this_o contest_v be_v tyrannical_a and_o that_o their_o dominion_n be_v their_o religion_n and_o their_o pride_n be_v their_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o question_n be_v but_o that_o which_o one_o will_v think_v christ_n have_v once_o sufficient_o determine_v who_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a do_v not_o christ_n chide_v his_o disciple_n for_o this_o contest_v and_o say_v with_o you_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o but_o the_o papist_n have_v no_o better_a way_n to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n a_o nose_n of_o wax_n and_o as_o flexible_a and_o multiform_a as_o they_o accuse_v it_o to_o be_v then_o by_o make_v it_o so_o to_o themselves_o by_o abusive_a violence_n and_o pervert_v it_o put_v by_o the_o plain_a word_n that_o christ_n can_v speak_v and_o will_v take_v his_o decision_n for_o no_o decision_n when_o it_o make_v against_o the_o decisive_n power_n of_o their_o pope_n 2._o and_o this_o be_v yet_o further_o manifest_a in_o that_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o their_o pope_n have_v be_v whoremonger_n murderer_n heretic_n simoniacal_a buy_v the_o popedom_n with_o money_n and_o poison_v one_o another_o to_o obtain_v the_o popedom_n and_o live_v in_o it_o like_a beast_n than_o man_n of_o all_o which_o i_o only_o appeal_v to_o platina_n and_o other_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n 3._o another_o pillar_n of_o popery_n be_v most_o unconscionable_a impiety_n they_o can_v dispense_v with_o the_o vile_a sin_n for_o the_o promote_a of_o their_o kingdom_n they_o can_v dispense_v with_o oath_n and_o with_o obligation_n of_o subject_n to_o their_o sovereigns_n with_o league_n of_o peace_n and_o amity_n among_o prince_n yea_o they_o can_v themselves_o actual_o promote_v and_o execute_v the_o most_o abominable_a impiety_n that_o will_v but_o help_v they_o to_o attain_v their_o end_n i_o will_v now_o only_a instance_n in_o that_o which_o be_v fresh_a before_o our_o own_o eye_n in_o england_n the_o papist_n know_v that_o anabaptist_n and_o separatist_n be_v erroneous_a they_o know_v that_o ranter_n and_o quaker_n be_v abominable_a and_o yet_o for_o their_o own_o end_n dare_v they_o here_o in_o england_n put_v on_o the_o vizard_n of_o anabaptist_n and_o quaker_n and_o with_o all_o possible_a subtlety_n and_o zeal_n and_o unwearyedness_n go_v up_o and_o down_o to_o seduce_v the_o people_n to_o be_v anabaptist_n and_o quaker_n as_o they_o do_v a_o while_n ago_o to_o be_v seeker_n if_o not_o infidel_n this_o be_v sufficient_o know_v and_o prove_v not_o only_o by_o the_o popish_a pretend_a jew_n that_o turn_v anabaptist_n at_o hexham_n and_o be_v take_v at_o newcastle_n and_o other_o of_o they_o take_v but_o by_o many_o other_o testimony_n some_o upon_o oath_n of_o those_o that_o have_v hear_v such_o confession_n from_o their_o mouth_n and_o many_o have_v know_v they_o in_o the_o quaker_n assembly_n that_o have_v see_v they_o before_o elsewhere_o and_o all_o this_o be_v do_v by_o they_o that_o they_o divide_v we_o and_o break_v we_o in_o piece_n and_o steal_v a_o credit_n to_o their_o pretend_a unity_n and_o church_n government_n and_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n from_o our_o ministry_n and_o unsettle_v they_o and_o make_v they_o more_o capable_a and_o receptive_a of_o their_o own_o opinion_n and_o that_o they_o may_v make_v other_o abroad_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v all_o run_v mad_a and_o can_v that_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n which_o teach_v man_n to_o do_v such_o abominable_a thing_n or_o be_v that_o like_a to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o christ_n that_o must_v be_v thus_o uphold_v be_v that_o person_n guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n that_o dare_v draw_v other_o to_o the_o vile_a blasphemy_n and_o wickedness_n in_o a_o dissemble_a garb_n that_o so_o he_o may_v promote_v his_o own_o cause_n certain_o christ_n need_v not_o such_o hypocrisy_n and_o wickedness_n for_o the_o promote_a of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o it_o seem_v the_o pope_n do_v need_v it_o for_o ●is_n 4._o another_o of_o the_o pillar_n of_o popery_n be_v most_o gross_a and_o impudent_a lie_v do_v i_o not_o know_v it_o to_o be_v true_a i_o dare_v not_o accuse_v they_o of_o it_o i_o will_v give_v you_o but_o these_o three_o instance_n follow_v 1._o they_o do_v raise_v and_o with_o great_a confidence_n propagate_v most_o shameless_a lie_n of_o those_o who_o they_o take_v for_o their_o lead_a adversary_n we_o read_v they_o in_o the_o open_a write_n of_o cochlaeus_fw-la bolse_o staphilu●_n thyraeus_n and_o many_o more_o what_o abominable_a story_n have_v they_o of_o the_o death_n of_o luther_n oecolampadius_n bucer_n calvin_n and_o other_o which_o it_o be_v very_o unlikely_a that_o they_o can_v be_v so_o blind_v with_o mali●e_a as_o to_o believe_v themselves_o what_o conference_n do_v we_o ever_o manage_v with_o they_o which_o they_o do_v not_o misreport_v witness_v the_o late_a ridiculous_a passage_n after_o the_o conference_n between_o fisher_n and_o doctor_n feat_o and_o doctor_n white_a when_o they_o boast_v beyond_o sea_n of_o the_o number_n of_o convert_v and_o in_o particular_a of_o two_o earl_n and_o this_o to_o the_o earl_n of_o warwick_n himself_o not_o know_v he_o who_o be_v feign_v to_o be_v one_o of_o they_o and_o who_o have_v be_v a_o witness_n of_o their_o weakness_n and_o how_o poor_o do_v weston_n in_o his_o pamphlet_n put_v this_o off_o 2._o the_o next_o instance_n i_o will_v give_v be_v their_o abominable_a lie_a legend_n by_o which_o they_o have_v befool_v the_o people_n and_o make_v themselves_o ridiculous_a to_o the_o world_n and_o occasion_v other_o to_o question_v their_o report_n in_o other_o thing_n i_o shall_v give_v you_o a_o taste_n of_o some_o of_o they_o as_o doctor_z feat_o have_v gather_v they_o to_o my_o hand_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o foresay_a conference_n yet_o with_o the_o author_n that_o report_v they_o that_o you_o may_v try_v whether_o they_o be_v wrong_v as_o that_o saint_n brigit_fw-la lay_v her_o wimble_a and_o saint_n aldelme_v his_o chesible_a upon_o a_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n which_o support_v they_o vit_fw-mi sanct._n brigit_fw-la &_o vit_fw-mi s._n aldelmi_n that_o saint_n nicolas_n while_o he_o lie_v in_o his_o cradle_n fast_v wednesday_n and_o friday_n these_o day_n he_o will_v suck_v but_o once_o a_o day_n festivale_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-it nicol_n that_o saint_n patrick_n cause_v a_o steal_a sheep_n to_o bleat_v in_o the_o belly_n of_o he_o that_o have_v eat_v he_o legend_n de_fw-fr st._n patricio_n that_o the_o corpse_n of_o saint_n laurence_n at_o the_o come_n of_o saint_n stephens●ody_n ●ody_z smile_v for_o joy_n and_o turn_v himself_o to_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o sepulchre_n to_o make_v room_n for_o he_o legend_n de_fw-fr s._n steph._n that_o clemens_n write_v a_o letter_n to_o saint_n james_n seven_o year_n after_o he_o be_v dead_a clem._n ep._n ad_fw-la jac._n in_o ep._n pontif._n that_o saint_n denis_n carry_v his_o head_n in_o his_o hand_n three_o mile_n and_o rest_v at_o each_o place_n of_o the_o post_n that_o be_v set_v between_o paris_n and_o saint_n denis_n breu._n &_o pictur_n diony_n that_o saint_n dunstane_n hold_v the_o devil_n fast_o by_o the_o nose_n with_o a_o pair_n of_o tongue_n leg._n de_fw-fr dunst_n that_o the_o chamber_n of_o our_o lady_n be_v carry_v by_o angel_n through_o the_o air_n from_o palestine_n to_o loretto_n in_o italy_n hist_o de_fw-fr nostre_fw-fr dame_n de_fw-fr lor●tto_n that_o our_o lady_n help_v saint_n thomas_n becket_n to_o mend_v or_o
that_o they_o will_v never_o take_v and_o interpret_v the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o according_a to_o the_o unaniomous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n when_o as_o 1._o the_o father_n do_v not_o unanimous_o consent_v among_o themselves_o concern_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o they_o be_v swear_v to_o take_v it_o in_o no_o sense_n because_o the_o father_n be_v not_o unanimous_a 2._o he_o that_o know_v not_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o father_n where_o they_o be_v unanimous_a be_v swear_v hereby_o to_o take_v and_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n in_o no_o sense_n 3._o if_o by_o the_o church_n who_o sense_n they_o also_o swear_v to_o admit_v be_v mean_v the_o present_a roman_a church_n than_o that_o church_n and_o the_o father_n do_v differ_v in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o many_o scripture_n so_o that_o in_o one_o article_n they_o must_v needs_o be_v forswear_v 4._o nay_o there_o be_v divers_a particular_n of_o the_o popish_a faith_n yea_o which_o in_o this_o oath_n they_o swear_v to_o which_o be_v against_o much_o more_o without_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n the_o father_n never_o consent_v to_o this_o very_a article_n that_o we_o must_v take_v and_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n only_o in_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o father_n they_o never_o consent_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o transubstantiation_n nay_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o father_n be_v against_o these_o and_o yet_o these_o wretch_n swear_v not_o to_o take_v and_o interpret_v scripture_n but_o in_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o father_n and_o withal_o swear_v the_o contrary_a in_o particular_n even_o that_o they_o believe_v that_o which_o the_o father_n never_o consent_v to_o but_o against_o never_o do_v the_o father_n consent_n that_o there_o be_v seven_o true_o and_o proper_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ_n never_o do_v the_o father_n consent_n who_o live_v a_o thousand_o or_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n before_o that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v not_o err_v or_o can_v not_o err_v nor_o that_o in_o the_o mass_n be_v offer_v a_o true_a proper_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o live_n and_o dead_a nor_n that_o the_o eucharist_n may_v be_v take_v under_o one_o kind_n and_o the_o cup_n withhold_v nor_o that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n or_o the_o soul_n there_o holpen_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o faithful_a nor_o that_o the_o saint_n with_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v pray_v to_o nor_n that_o image_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v nor_o the_o power_n of_o popish_a indulgency_n leave_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o use_n of_o they_o wholesome_a never_o do_v the_o father_n consent_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n over_o they_o nor_o that_o all_o christian_n or_o bishop_n or_o pastor_n shall_v swear_v true_a obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o christ_n vicar_n let_v these_o proud_a deceiver_n show_v we_o if_o they_o can_v when_o the_o father_n or_o any_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_n do_v ever_o take_v any_o such_o oath_n himself_o or_o persuade_v other_o to_o it_o yea_o or_o that_o they_o have_v consent_v to_o any_o one_o of_o these_o article_n of_o the_o romish_a faith_n and_o trent_n oath_n what_o more_o evident_a to_o any_o man_n that_o have_v any_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o father_n then_o that_o these_o wretch_n do_v here_o most_o palpable_o forswear_v themselves_o even_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v swear_v to_o believe_v nothing_o but_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o withal_o swear_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n never_o die_v rose_n or_o ascend_v or_o that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n or_o everlasting_a life_n certain_o if_o the_o very_a faith_n of_o papist_n be_v contradiction_n and_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o plain_a perjury_n than_o popery_n be_v not_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n i_o will_v here_o have_v add_v as_o the_o fourteen_o argument_n that_o popery_n be_v a_o mixture_n of_o old_a condemn_a error_n former_o call_v heresy_n which_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v testify_v against_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o here_o i_o shall_v have_v try_v their_o particular_a error_n not_o yet_o mention_v or_o insist_v on_o as_o their_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n and_o justification_n thereby_o satisfaction_n and_o many_o semipelagian_a error_n image-worship_n with_o many_o the_o like_a but_o that_o this_o be_v beyond_o my_o present_a intend_a scope_n and_o purpose_a brevity_n and_o be_v so_o full_o perform_v already_o by_o so_o many_o unanswerable_a treatise_n of_o our_o divine_n let_v we_o next_o here_o what_o be_v say_v of_o most_o moment_n to_o prove_v popery_n to_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n obj._n 1_o that_o religion_n which_o have_v be_v deliver_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o this_o day_n without_o interruption_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a christian_n be_v save_v in_o but_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr 1._o there_o be_v a_o change_n of_o the_o very_a subject_n of_o the_o question_n it_o be_v popery_n that_o we_o be_v dispute_v of_o and_o this_o argument_n instead_o of_o popery_n speak_v of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v two_o part_n first_o the_o christian_a faith_n second_o their_o own_o corruption_n deprave_v and_o contradict_v this_o faith_n the_o first_o as_o it_o stand_v alone_o uncontradict_v in_o the_o religion_n which_o ●e_v profess_v the_o second_o be_v it_o that_o we_o call_v popery_n and_o ●ay_n it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n 2._o and_o of_o this_o i_o deny_v the_o minor_a and_o say_v that_o popery_n be_v not_o the_o ancient_a religion_n the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n never_o know_v it_o there_o be_v no_o such_o creature_n as_o a_o papist_n know_v in_o all_o the_o world_n till_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v about_o 606._o when_o pope_n boniface_n do_v first_o claim_v his_o universal_a papacy_n and_o headship_n and_o after_o that_o it_o be_v not_o till_o about_o one_o thousand_o year_n that_o the_o usurpation_n and_o tyranny_n be_v consent_v to_o any_o thing_n general_o in_o th●_n west_n and_o even_o the_o multitude_n still_o dissent_v and_o some_o opposition_n be_v still_o make_v against_o it_o and_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n do_v dissent_v of_o these_o thing_n there_o be_v enough_o say_v to_o silence_v all_o the_o papist_n on_o earth_n in_o bishop_n usher_n de_fw-fr contin_fw-fr successione_n &_o slatu_n eccles_n occident_n and_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n challenge_n and_o by_o bishop_n jewel_n and_o doctor_n field_n and_o in_o many_o of_o the_o old_a treatise_n against_o the_o pope_n publish_v together_o by_o goldastus_n which_o show_v we_o that_o he_o settle_v not_o his_o kingdom_n without_o continnual_a opposition_n and_o contradiction_n we_o affirm_v that_o popery_n be_v a_o mere_a novelty_n and_o challenge_v all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n to_o prove_v the_o antiquity_n of_o it_o when_o they_o have_v once_o arrogate_a to_o themselves_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v that_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o all_o be_v true_a which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n will_v report_v of_o themselves_o it_o be_v then_o a_o easy_a matter_n for_o they_o to_o prove_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a which_o make_v for_o their_o turn_n then_o they_o may_v say_v the_o father_n be_v for_o they_o and_o that_o they_o have_v their_o papal_a sovereignty_n from_o st_n peter_n when_o there_o be_v never_o a_o true_a word_n in_o it_o then_o they_o may_v frame_v and_o forge_v new_a decretal_n and_o cut_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n th●_n which_o be_v against_o they_o and_o bring_v forth_o spurious_a write_n under_o their_o name_n and_o tell_v the_o people_n that_o our_o religion_n begin_v with_o luther_n for_o its_o easy_a to_o prove_v any_o thing_n where_o themselves_o be_v the_o judge_n and_o no_o witness_n but_o their_o own_o must_v be_v hear_v but_o if_o they_o dare_v leave_v that_o hold_n and_o come_v into_o the_o light_n its_o easy_a to_o evince_v the_o novelty_n of_o popery_n though_o not_o of_o every_o particular_a error_n they_o hold_v obj._n 2._o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n then_o popery_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n
utmost_a he_o and_o his_o factious_a clergy_n so_o also_o they_o be_v disagree_v among_o themselves_o whether_o 162.163_o the_o bishop_n in_o a_o general_n council_n be_v judge_n with_o the_o pope_n or_o only_o the_o pope_n counsellor_n yea_o or_o what_o a_o general_a council_n be_v though_o they_o all_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n much_o less_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o church_n but_o only_o some_o of_o those_o that_o adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n yet_o they_o agree_v not_o whether_o it_o must_v be_v free_o elect_v by_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o romish_a faction_n or_o only_o so_o many_o and_o of_o such_o country_n as_o the_o pope_n shall_v choose_v and_o whether_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o council_n must_v concur_v with_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o minor_a part_n may_v not_o serve_v turn_v 164._o 5._o so_o also_o they_o be_v exceed_o disagree_v about_o the_o nature_n and_o extent_n or_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o judge_v 5._o some_o say_v that_o the_o church_n judge_v de_fw-la mediis_fw-la discursive_a sed_fw-la de_fw-fr conclusione_n per_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la propheticam_fw-la &_o divinam_fw-la and_o so_o these_o man_n may_v affirm_v agreeable_o to_o this_o principle_n that_o the_o pope_n definition_n be_v part_n of_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n as_o melchior_n canus_n affirm_v he_o hear_v a_o most_o excellent_a divine_n confess_v and_o cit_v gratian_n and_o innocent_n also_o as_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n 165._o and_o thus_o all_o the_o most_o wicked_a pope_n be_v make_v prophet_n and_o speak_v by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o other_o of_o they_o 4._o do_v deny_v this_o though_o yet_o they_o know_v not_o how_o it_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a without_o declare_v themselves_o enthusiast_n also_o though_o say_v bellarm._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr pontif._n c._n 2._o all_o yield_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v personal_o err_v through_o ignorance_n yet_o they_o be_v disagree_v among_o themselves_o whether_o he_o may_v be_v a_o heretic_n some_o 6._o say_v he_o may_v not_o and_o other_o that_o its_o most_o pious_a and_o probable_a to_o think_v he_o may_v not_o other_o reject_v that_o as_o false_a 8._o and_o say_v he_o may_v and_o one_o will_v think_v it_o shall_v have_v be_v out_o of_o question_n by_o long_a experience_n before_o this_o time_n and_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o three_o general_a council_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v a_o heretic_n ubi_fw-la sup_n c._n 11._o some_o say_v 3._o that_o when_o the_o pope_n be_v consult_v and_o give_v his_o judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n he_o can_v err_v though_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n he_o may_v and_o that_o he_o be_v infallible_a in_o his_o court_n and_o council_n though_o not_o as_o a_o private_a doctor_n other_o 40._o say_v that_o he_o can_v err_v when_o he_o intend_v to_o bind_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o receive_v his_o sentence_n or_o when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n 233_o other_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v even_o define_v in_o council_n but_o not_o in_o error_n manifest_a to_o the_o church_n but_o only_o in_o new_a or_o not_o manifest_a point_n 4._o other_o come_v yet_o near_o the_o matter_n and_o tell_v we_o merry_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v so_o err_v in_o judgement_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n because_o when_o he_o first_o err_v thus_o he_o cease_v to_o be_v pope_n but_o this_o be_v a_o hard_a conclusion_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o brethren_n the_o like_a disagreement_n there_o be_v among_o they_o about_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o general_n council_n some_o will_v make_v it_o the_o proper_a seat_n of_o infallibility_n and_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v if_o he_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o council_n else_o he_o may_v other_o 1●_n say_v that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v err_v if_o it_o be_v not_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n yea_o though_o the_o pope_n legate_n do_v consent_v or_o if_o they_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o pope_n instruction_n but_o that_o they_o can_v err_v if_o they_o follow_v they_o or_o be_v confirm_v by_o he_o so_o bellarmine_n canus_n and_o the_o late_a champion_n and_o if_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n differ_v as_o they_o have_v shrewd_o do_v when_o council_n have_v depose_v pope_n for_o heresy_n and_o wickedness_n some_o 86._o say_v that_o we_o may_v more_o safe_o follow_v the_o council_n then_o the_o pope_n but_o other_o other_o say_v the_o clean_a contrary_n and_o place_v the_o infallibility_n in_o the_o pope_n only_o and_o make_v it_o his_o work_n to_o reclaim_v the_o council_n though_o they_o be_v thus_o all_o in_o piece_n among_o themselves_o even_o about_o these_o their_o fundamental_o yet_o be_v it_o the_o custom_n of_o their_o deceitful_a writer_n to_o make_v the_o simple_a people_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v all_o agree_v and_o to_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o they_o have_v universal_a tradition_n etc._n etc._n that_o by_o the_o noise_n of_o these_o big_a word_n they_o may_v do_v that_o which_o they_o can_v do_v by_o argument_n thus_o doctor_n vane_n their_o late_a proselyte_n and_o divers_a other_o do_v in_o their_o write_n overlook_v all_o their_o own_o disagreement_n and_o pass_v on_o as_o confident_o in_o their_o boast_n of_o the_o universal_a consent_n as_o if_o they_o be_v either_o such_o novice_n as_o understand_v not_o their_o own_o religion_n or_o such_o harden_a seducer_n as_o be_v not_o willing_a that_o other_o shall_v understand_v it_o here_o be_v in_o this_o our_o question_n contain_v three_o of_o the_o great_a controversy_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n 1._o whether_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o faith_n and_o scripture_n to_o all_o the_o world_n 2._o whether_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o clergy_n be_v in●llible_a in_o judge_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n 3._o whether_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v into_o this_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o they_o our_o intent_n in_o this_o present_a dispute_n be_v to_o deal_v most_o with_o the_o second_o yet_o so_o as_o it_o be_v connex_v with_o the_o other_o two_o and_o therefore_o shall_v take_v they_o in_o on_o the_o by_o but_o say_v less_o to_o they_o distinct_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o there_o be_v so_o much_o say_v already_o by_o our_o divine_n as_o all_o the_o papist_n on_o earth_n will_v never_o be_v able_a solid_o to_o answer_v to_o let_v pass_v all_o those_o beyond_o sea_n that_o have_v effectual_o confound_v they_o we_o have_v britain_n enough_o to_o hold_v they_o perpetual_a work_n as_o jewel_n reignolds_n whitaker_n white_n field_n usher_n camero_n baronius_n davenant_n chillingworth_n to_o who_o they_o have_v late_o lose_v their_o cause_n by_o show_v in_o a_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a reply_n how_o little_a they_o have_v to_o say_v against_o he_o with_o many_o more_o who_o will_v either_o remain_v unanswered_a or_o the_o answer_n will_v be_v worse_o to_o the_o adversary_n cause_n than_o silence_n itself_o which_o we_o have_v sufficient_a ground_n already_o to_o foretell_v as_o to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o controversy_n to_o dispatch_v it_o in_o short_a as_o we_o distinguish_v between_o judicium_fw-la descretionis_fw-la directionis_fw-la &_o decisionis_fw-la a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n of_o direction_n and_o of_o decision_n so_o we_o kn●w_v that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o late_a that_o proper_o denominate_v a_o judge_n in_o the_o public_a and_o ordinary_a sense_n take_v our_o doctrine_n in_o these_o few_o proposition_n 1._o we_o say_v that_o every_o christian_n have_v a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n to_o know_v that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v true_a and_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o else_o he_o be_v no_o christian_a or_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o act_n of_o judgement_n or_o reason_n but_o a_o brutish_a thing_n this_o therefore_o we_o confess_v the_o pope_n either_o have_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v 2._o every_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v a_o judgement_n of_o direction_n that_o be_v it_o belong_v to_o he_o by_o office_n to_o be_v a_o director_n of_o the_o people_n and_o to_o teach_v those_o the_o christian_a faith_n that_o yet_o receive_v it_o not_o and_o to_o confirm_v those_o in_o it_o that_o have_v receive_v it_o and_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v ability_n for_o the_o work_n of_o this_o office_n if_o therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o true_a pastor_n bishop_n or_o preacher_n this_o power_n we_o shall_v confess_v to_o be_v in_o he_o as_o in_o other_o 3._o it_o belong_v to_o these_o teacher_n also_o to_o be_v special_o careful_a to_o preserve_v the_o sacred_a scripture_n from_o corruption_n and_o
keep_v he_o from_o this_o be_v to_o make_v god_n commission_n to_o be_v impious_a and_o his_o grace_n to_o the_o pope_n only_o to_o hinder_v the_o execution_n of_o they_o in_o a_o impious_a way_n who_o dare_v say_v open_o that_o god_n have_v give_v authority_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o judge_v decisive_o and_o obligatory_o that_o there_o be_v no_o god_n christ_n or_o scripture_n though_o he_o will_v gracious_o hinder_v he_o from_o so_o do_v if_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o they_o do_v not_o say_v so_o i_o will_v know_v then_o what_o their_o judicial_a power_n in_o these_o matter_n be_v be_v it_o only_o this_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o judge_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n a_o christ_n a_o word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n why_o so_o have_v other_o as_o well_o he_o if_o they_o shall_v dare_v to_o say_v that_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o such_o to_o we_o that_o be_v we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v they_o till_o the_o pope_n have_v determine_v they_o i_o answer_v what!_o be_v no_o heathen_a or_o infidel_n bind_v to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n a_o christ_n a_o scripture_n till_o the_o pope_n tell_v he_o so_o shall_v all_o infidel_n be_v excuse_v in_o judgement_n that_o have_v the_o gospel_n preach_v to_o they_o by_o any_o other_o christian_n except_o the_o pope_n or_o other_o in_o his_o name_n be_v no_o man_n on_o earth_n bind_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n that_o know_v not_o the_o pope_n mind_n in_o the_o matter_n and_o must_v man_n believe_v in_o the_o pope_n before_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o must_v they_o believe_v in_o christ_n only_o because_o the_o pope_n bid_v they_o or_o because_o they_o first_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o either_o the_o ear_n of_o good_a christian_n or_o rational_a infidel_n will_v relish_v such_o doctrine_n and_o what_o be_v this_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n that_o must_v go_v first_o be_v it_o not_o to_o take_v he_o to_o be_v saint_n peter_n successor_n and_o that_o saint_n peter_n be_v christ_n disciple_n who_o have_v a_o promise_n of_o infallibility_n which_o be_v now_o devolve_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o must_v this_o be_v believe_v before_o man_n believe_v in_o christ_n we_o must_v believe_v what_o he_o promise_v and_o who_o be_v his_o servant_n before_o we_o believe_v in_o himself_o this_o be_v a_o ground_n too_o like_o the_o popish_a superstructure_n but_o perhaps_o they_o may_v in_o time_n grow_v moderate_a and_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o some_o only_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v make_v judge_n he_o may_v not_o judge_v about_o christ_n himself_o whether_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n but_o about_o his_o doctrine_n answ_n 1._o by_o what_o warrant_n will_v they_o distinguish_v and_o claim_v power_n in_o one_o which_o they_o have_v not_o in_o the_o other_o 2._o be_v it_o all_o or_o some_o of_o christ_n doctrine_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v judge_n of_o if_o all_o than_o it_o seem_v he_o must_v judge_v whether_o he_o that_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v or_o not_o whether_o we_o shall_v love_v god_n or_o hate_v he_o whether_o we_o shall_v seek_v first_o god_n kingdom_n or_o worldly_a vanity_n and_o whether_o a_o man_n shall_v commit_v murder_n adultery_n theft_n etc._n etc._n or_o not_o may_v he_o decide_v these_o on_o either_o part_n or_o on_o one_o only_a as_o other_o may_v do_v may_v he_o judge_v that_o there_o be_v no_o judgement_n resurrection_n or_o life_n everlasting_a i_o know_v they_o dare_v not_o say_v it_o if_o it_o be_v but_o some_o of_o christ_n doctrine_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v make_v judge_n of_o then_o let_v they_o tell_v we_o which_o it_o be_v and_o give_v we_o their_o proof_n and_o they_o shall_v hear_v more_o from_o we_o let_v it_o be_v the_o small_a point_n they_o will_v imagine_v have_v god_n give_v power_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o contradict_v he_o and_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n if_o god_n say_v it_o be_v so_o may_v the_o pope_n say_v it_o be_v not_o so_o what_o if_o the_o pope_n say_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n or_o luke_n or_o john_n be_v no_o part_n of_o god_n word_n must_v we_o believe_v he_o what_o if_o he_o tell_v as_o that_o the_o world_n be_v make_v in_o five_o day_n and_o not_o in_o six_o must_v we_o believe_v he_o 2._o if_o they_o yet_o fly_v to_o his_o infallibility_n i_o shall_v speak_v more_o to_o that_o anon_o though_o the_o former_a answer_n may_v well_o suffice_v they_o but_o to_o another_o arg._n 3._o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n law_n the_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o judge_n of_o god_n law_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o the_o judge_n of_o scripture_n the_o major_n i_o hope_v no_o christian_n will_v deny_v the_o minor_a be_v evident_a from_o the_o nature_n and_o use_n of_o law_n and_o judgement_n the_o law_n be_v norma_n judicis_fw-la in_o judicando_fw-la the_o judge_n rule_n he_o be_v not_o to_o judge_v the_o law_n but_o the_o cause_n of_o particular_a person_n by_o that_o law_n indeed_o as_o to_o the_o right_a guidance_n of_o his_o own_o act_n of_o decisive_n judge_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o person_n he_o have_v a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n but_o as_o if_o he_o judge_v upon_o a_o false_a exposition_n of_o the_o law_n the_o party_n may_v appeal_v from_o he_o so_o which_o concern_v our_o present_a case_n he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o judge_v the_o law_n itself_o as_o he_o can_v make_v a_o plain_a text_n to_o bear_v a_o false_a sense_n or_o oblige_v the_o subject_n to_o believe_v a_o false_a sense_n so_o in_o a_o doubtful_a case_n it_o belong_v to_o the_o lawgiver_n only_o to_o interpret_v their_o own_o law_n only_o a_o sentence_n of_o a_o lawful_a judge_n ground_v upon_o a_o false_a exposition_n may_v sometime_o be_v execute_v among_o man_n where_o justice_n can_v be_v have_v but_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v true_a and_o just_a james_n tell_v man_n what_o it_o be_v to_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o judge_n of_o the_o law_n in_o stead_n of_o do_v it_o and_o leave_v that_o to_o the_o one_o lawgiver_n jam._n 4_o 11_o 12._o and_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v make_v judge_n of_o every_o controvert_v difficulty_n in_o scripture_n then_o why_o be_v he_o so_o unfaithful_a that_o he_o have_v not_o hitherto_o write_v we_o a_o infallible_a commentary_n on_o it_o and_o why_o do_v he_o not_o determine_v all_o the_o controversy_n about_o it_o that_o among_o his_o own_o follower_n remain_v yet_o undetermined_a of_o which_o more_o anon_o arg._n 4._o if_o the_o pope_n be_v make_v the_o decide_n judge_n of_o faith_n and_o scripture_n then_o either_o of_o the_o plain_a point_n or_o only_o of_o the_o controvert_v difficulty_n or_o of_o both_o but_o not_o of_o the_o plain_a point_n for_o 1._o that_o which_o be_v evident_a and_o not_o under_o controversy_n need_v no_o judge_n to_o the_o ignorant_a there_o may_v be_v need_n of_o a_o interpreter_n and_o teacher_n but_o not_o of_o a_o judge_n 2._o such_o text_n of_o scripture_n do_v oblige_v we_o whether_o the_o pope_n judge_n of_o they_o or_o not_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o his_o judgement_n that_o they_o may_v oblige_v we_o who_o dare_v think_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o love_n god_n above_o all_o to_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o we_o to_o love_v christ_n disciple_n etc._n etc._n unless_o he_o know_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o all_o law_n of_o the_o land_n oblige_v the_o subject_n upon_o the_o bare_a legislation_n and_o promulgation_n before_o the_o judge_n meddle_v with_o they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o first_o oblige_v we_o to_o duty_n there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o the_o judge_n to_o sentence_v we_o to_o punishment_n for_o disobedience_n it_o be_v the_o legislator_n that_o oblige_v to_o duty_n by_o his_o law_n proclaim_v or_o any_o way_n publish_v in_o his_o name_n but_o judgement_n interven_v to_o oblige_v man_n to_o punishment_n and_o bring_v it_o to_o execution_n and_o to_o help_v they_o to_o that_o which_o by_o the_o law_n be_v their_o right_n if_o therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o law_n and_o judgement_n that_o we_o be_v oblige_v by_o god_n law_n to_o believe_v and_o obey_v they_o in_o the_o several_a particular_n before_o any_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v then_o but_o dotage_n to_o talk_v of_o a_o judicial_a decisive_n power_n in_o the_o pope_n to_o oblige_v man_n to_o believe_v those_o same_o doctrine_n and_o obey_v those_o same_o precept_n of_o the_o word_n and_o for_o the_o dark_a and_o controvert_v text_n 1._o those_o be_v not_o of_o that_o moment_n as_o that_o man_n salvation_n
must_v lie_v upon_o the_o exposition_n of_o they_o the_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v plain_o deliver_v 2._o obscurity_n show_v the_o need_n of_o a_o teacher_n but_o not_o of_o a_o judge_n at_o least_o its_o plain_a that_o when_o any_o teacher_n shall_v remove_v the_o obscurity_n those_o text_n oblige_v we_o as_o well_o as_o the_o plain_a 3._o as_o i_o say_v if_o the_o pope_n be_v judge_n of_o all_o difficult_a controvert_v text_n he_o be_v a_o unfaithful_a judge_n that_o will_v not_o expound_v they_o to_o we_o and_o decide_v so_o many_o controversy_n as_o yet_o depend_v what_o good_a will_v it_o be_v to_o the_o church_n to_o have_v such_o a_o judge_n of_o difficult_a controvert_v text_n of_o scripture_n as_o in_o the_o consciousness_n of_o his_o ignorance_n dare_v not_o give_v we_o his_o judgement_n but_o have_v leave_v they_o undecided_a these_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n this_o dumb_a oracle_n that_o have_v eye_n and_o see_v not_o and_o a_o mouth_n but_o speak_v not_o be_v not_o a_o fit_a foundation_n for_o the_o church_n faith_n 5._o where_o god_n call_v man_n to_o office_n and_o power_n he_o accomplish_v or_o fit_v they_o in_o some_o measure_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o but_o god_n have_v not_o fit_v all_o pope_n no_o nor_o any_o to_o jugde_v decisive_o of_o all_o controvert_v difficultye_n in_o scripture_n and_o religion_n therefore_o he_o have_v not_o make_v they_o judge_n of_o they_o the_o minor_a shall_v be_v further_o prove_v anon_o many_o pope_n have_v be_v ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a many_o heretic_n unfit_a to_o decide_v all_o such_o controversy_n and_o they_o have_v show_v their_o unfitnesse_n by_o their_o non_fw-la performance_n or_o ill_a performance_n the_o great_a objection_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v this_o obj._n 1_o what!_o shall_v every_o one_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o scripture_n and_o take_v it_o in_o what_o sense_n he_o please_v shall_v every_o unlearned_a man_n or_o woman_n expound_v it_o according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n then_o we_o shall_v have_v variety_n of_o exposition_n whether_o be_v it_o fit_a for_o the_o church_n or_o every_o simple_a fellow_n to_o be_v judge_n answ_n 1._o neither_o have_v god_n make_v subject_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o his_o law_n by_o which_o they_o must_v live_v and_o by_o which_o they_o must_v be_v judge_v neither_o they_o nor_o your_o pope_n must_v be_v judge_n of_o the_o law_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n but_o obeyer_n of_o it_o 2._o we_o say_v not_o that_o the_o people_n shall_v expound_v the_o scripture_n as_o teacher_n of_o other_o unless_o in_o their_o own_o calling_n as_o to_o the_o child_n servant_n etc._n etc._n when_o they_o be_v able_a this_o we_o reserve_v to_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o nor_o do_v we_o say_v that_o any_o people_n must_v expound_v scripture_n according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n or_o misguide_v conceit_n but_o according_a to_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o they_o 4._o nor_o shall_v they_o in_o difficult_a case_n which_o be_v past_o their_o understanding_n presume_v of_o their_o own_o wit_n to_o know_v the_o right_a meaning_n but_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o teacher_n that_o god_n have_v set_v over_o they_o that_o so_o by_o their_o help_n they_o may_v learn_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o word_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o 5._o and_o if_o their_o teacher_n be_v singular_a or_o give_v they_o just_a cause_n to_o suspect_v their_o skill_n or_o fidelity_n they_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o regard_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o judicious_a then_o of_o the_o ignorant_a and_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o of_o any_o one_o or_o few_o so_o far_o as_o the_o credit_n or_o authority_n of_o man_n must_v support_v a_o learner_n while_o he_o be_v a_o learning_n 6._o but_o what_o be_v it_o indeed_o such_o a_o monstrous_a heretical_a conceit_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o papist_n that_o every_o christian_n shall_v have_v a_o judicium_fw-la discretionis_fw-la a_o judgement_n of_o discern_v to_o perceive_v and_o discern_v which_o be_v truth_n and_o which_o be_v falsehood_n good_a lord_n whether_o will_v the_o heat_n of_o contention_n carry_v man_n why_o if_o they_o must_v not_o have_v this_o discern_a judgement_n 1._o then_o god_n do_v bind_v they_o all_o to_o be_v fool_n and_o ignorant_a 2._o and_o then_o religion_n and_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v the_o endowment_n of_o bruit_n that_o know_v not_o what_o they_o hold_v or_o do_v and_o not_o of_o reasonable_a man_n 3._o or_o else_o they_o that_o will_v be_v christian_n must_v have_v no_o faith_n or_o knowledge_n which_o be_v a_o contradiction_n be_v not_o faith_n a_o act_n of_o discretion_n must_v not_o he_o that_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n and_o everlasting_a life_n believe_v they_o with_o his_o own_o understanding_n and_o do_v he_o not_o in_o believe_v they_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v true_a and_o judge_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n to_o be_v false_a 4._o why_o will_v you_o read_v or_o preach_v scripture_n to_o the_o people_n if_o you_o will_v not_o have_v they_o receive_v it_o by_o a_o judgement_n of_o discern_v will_v you_o not_o have_v their_o judgement_n discern_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o god_n have_v write_v or_o the_o priest_n shall_v preach_v to_o they_o 5._o doubtless_o you_o will_v allow_v they_o a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n about_o the_o pope_n decree_n and_o canon_n and_o your_o own_o determination_n how_o can_v they_o believe_v you_o if_o they_o do_v not_o by_o judgement_n discern_v the_o thing_n you_o say_v to_o be_v true_a and_o why_o will_v you_o not_o allow_v they_o the_o like_a towards_o god_n and_o his_o word_n will_v you_o say_v it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o believe_v the_o pope_n and_o their_o sin_n to_o believe_v god_n or_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o understand_v the_o pope_n law_n and_o their_o sin_n to_o understand_v god_n law_n why_o what_o do_v you_o say_v less_o when_o you_o yield_v they_o a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n as_o to_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n and_o deny_v it_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o will_v misunderstand_v the_o scripture_n i_o ans_fw-fr 1._o so_o will_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o best_a and_o wise_a man_n on_o earth_n in_o some_o part_n because_o while_o we_o be_v here_o we_o know_v but_o in_o part_n 2._o their_o error_n be_v their_o sin_n but_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o they_o may_v not_o see_v at_o all_o for_o fear_v of_o miss_v their_o way_n must_v they_o put_v out_o their_o eye_n and_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o fear_v of_o err_v must_v they_o not_o know_v or_o labour_n to_o know_v for_o fear_v of_o mistake_v will_v any_o master_n take_v this_o well_o of_o his_o servant_n to_o put_v out_o his_o eye_n or_o do_v nothing_o for_o fear_v of_o do_v his_o work_n amiss_o or_o refuse_v to_o go_v his_o journey_n lest_o he_o miss_v the_o way_n then_o we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o the_o pope_n law_n neither_o and_o consequent_o not_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v true_a for_o fear_v of_o err_v in_o our_o judgement_n when_o you_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n will_v you_o not_o have_v the_o people_n judge_v of_o your_o proof_n for_o fear_n of_o err_v this_o be_v even_o to_o make_v beast_n of_o christian_n 3._o what_o be_v teacher_n for_o but_o to_o guide_v they_o and_o help_v they_o to_o understand_v if_o you_o be_v afraid_a lest_o they_o shall_v err_v be_v the_o more_o diligent_a in_o instruct_v they_o but_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o work_n of_o a_o popish_a teacher_n and_o we_o they_o make_v it_o their_o work_n to_o put_v out_o man_n eye_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o load_n of_o they_o because_o they_o be_v trouble_v with_o a_o imperfection_n in_o their_o sight_n and_o therefore_o will_v err_v if_o those_o imperfect_a eye_n be_v leave_v in_o their_o head_n we_o make_v it_o our_o work_n by_o all_o mean_v we_o can_v use_v to_o cure_v their_o eye_n sight_n that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o see_v themselves_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n advise_v they_o while_o their_o eye_n be_v under_o cure_n not_o whole_o to_o trust_v to_o they_o but_o to_o use_v the_o help_n of_o other_o to_o show_v they_o the_o way_n and_o to_o tell_v they_o of_o danger_n the_o protestant_n will_v set_v his_o child_n to_o school_n that_o he_o may_v learn_v to_o know_v that_o which_o through_o childishness_n he_o know_v not_o but_o according_a to_o the_o popish_a way_n we_o shall_v forbid_v they_o all_o book_n or_o learning_n lest_o they_o misunderstand_v they_o and_o let_v they_o never_o know_v any_o thing_n lest_o they_o know_v amiss_o the_o next_o step_n be_v to_o send_v they_o to_o bedlam_n the_o apostle_n will_v have_v man_n have_v their_o sense_n exercise_v to_o discern_v good_a
papal_a infallibility_n can_v be_v prove_v and_o so_o to_o forsake_v both_o popery_n and_o christianity_n then_o it_o seem_v no_o man_n can_v know_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n but_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n which_o can_v itself_o be_v know_v till_o that_o infallibility_n be_v know_v it_o must_v be_v god_n grant_v write_v or_o unwritten_a that_o must_v prove_v their_o infallibility_n but_o that_o word_n or_o grant_v write_v or_o unwritten_a can_v be_v know_v to_o be_v of_o god_n till_o we_o first_o know_v their_o authority_n to_o judge_v and_o infallibility_n in_o judge_v it_o evident_o follow_v therefore_o according_a to_o they_o that_o neither_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o can_v be_v know_v because_o no_o one_o of_o they_o can_v be_v know_v till_o the_o other_o be_v first_o know_v but_o 2_o if_o we_o can_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n before_o we_o know_v their_o infallibility_n in_o judge_v yet_o we_o can_v know_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o that_o scripture_n as_o they_o confident_o tell_v we_o first_o well_o then_o i_o be_o one_o that_o doubt_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n and_o demand_v his_o proof_n bellarmine_n turn_v i_o to_o luk._n 22._o i_o have_v pray_v that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o i_o must_v know_v how_o i_o shall_v be_v sure_a that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o scripture_n which_o be_v so_o little_a apparent_a to_o a_o ordinary_a eye_n he_o have_v nothing_o to_o tell_v i_o but_o that_o the_o church_n say_v so_o and_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v that_o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o right_a why_o because_o it_o can_v err_v and_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v that_o why_o by_o this_o text._n and_o so_o they_o be_v amaze_v in_o another_o circle_n past_a recovery_n for_o they_o express_o and_o frequent_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o good_a evidence_n but_o when_o it_o be_v right_o expound_v and_o that_o no_o exposition_n be_v right_a but_o that_o which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n can_v be_v know_v till_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o text_n be_v know_v that_o prove_v it_o and_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o those_o text_n can_v be_v know_v till_o their_o infallible_a judgement_n be_v first_o know_v what_o follow_v therefore_o but_o that_o neither_o of_o they_o can_v be_v know_v the_o true_a product_n of_o popery_n this_o be_v the_o usual_a success_n of_o false_a argue_v for_o a_o good_a cause_n to_o overthrow_v both_o the_o cause_n and_o argument_n so_o do_v the_o papist_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v overthrow_n both_o christ_n doctrine_n and_o their_o own_o 3._o but_o let_v we_o examine_v the_o particular_a proof_n from_o scripture_n that_o they_o bring_v his_o first_o proof_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr pontif._n cap._n 3._o be_v from_o luk._n 22._o simon_n simon_n satan_n have_v desire_v etc._n etc._n but_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o and_o when_o thou_o be_v convert_v strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n do_v this_o text_n say_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v infallible_a yes_o if_o you_o will_v take_v bellarmine_n word_n and_o first_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o among_o themselves_o there_o be_v three_o several_a exposition_n give_v of_o this_o text_n and_o it_o be_v but_o one_o of_o the_o three_o that_o will_v serve_v their_o turn_n good_a still_o and_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o this_o one_o which_o bellarmine_n hit_v on_o be_v the_o right_a let_v any_o impartial_a man_n peruse_v his_o reason_n and_o make_v his_o best_a of_o they_o for_o indeed_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n in_o they_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_n i_o shall_v presume_v to_o tell_v they_o why_o i_o suppose_v that_o this_o text_n do_v not_o talk_v of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n 1._o because_o here_o be_v never_o a_o word_n either_o of_o the_o pope_n or_o of_o rome_n or_o of_o infallibility_n 2._o because_o the_o thing_n here_o promise_v be_v express_o restrain_v to_o one_o individual_a person_n simon_n 3._o the_o thing_n here_o promise_v be_v about_o peter_n personal_a faith_n and_o not_o about_o infallibility_n in_o judge_v for_o 1._o in_o that_o respect_n that_o satan_n desire_v to_o sift_v peter_n in_o that_o respect_n christ_n promise_v the_o not_o fail_v of_o his_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o his_o personal_a faith_n and_o not_o his_o cathedral_n judgement_n that_o satan_n be_v here_o say_v to_o desire_v to_o sift_v he_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n 2._o it_o be_v express_o say_v to_o be_v his_o faith_n that_o shall_v not_o fail_v but_o his_o faith_n be_v not_o his_o tongue_n or_o cathedral_n sentence_n word_n be_v not_o faith_n 4._o it_o be_v not_o all_o degree_n of_o infallibility_n or_o not_o fail_v that_o christ_n pray_v for_o to_o simon_n but_o he_o only_o pray_v that_o his_o faith_n may_v not_o be_v overcome_v foresee_v that_o it_o will_v shake_v and_o that_o he_o will_v deny_v he_o so_o that_o this_o be_v no_o promise_n of_o perfect_a infallibility_n to_o peter_n himself_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o issue_n 5._o peter_n himself_o be_v to_o be_v convert_v from_o some_o fail_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o exempt_v from_o it_o and_o the_o case_n here_o in_o hand_n be_v such_o as_o that_o conversion_n have_v respect_n to_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o fail_v in_o cathedral_n determination_n for_o he_o be_v not_o convert_v from_o such_o bellarmine_n here_o most_o immodest_o will_v intimate_v that_o the_o text_n speak_v not_o of_o peter_n conversion_n from_o any_o sin_n but_o of_o his_o turn_n to_o his_o brethren_n to_o speak_v to_o they_o as_o if_o it_o be_v when_o thou_o turn_v thou_o to_o speak_v to_o thy_o brethren_n strengthen_v they_o nothing_o but_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n or_o the_o gross_a fallibility_n of_o common_a reason_n can_v make_v a_o learned_a man_n think_v that_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o text._n 6._o the_o papist_n pretend_v that_o here_o be_v somewhat_o promise_v to_o peter_n which_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o partaker_n of_o but_o that_o be_v not_o so_o for_o if_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o apostatise_v the_o same_o be_v give_v to_o they_o all_o except_o judas_n if_o it_o have_v be_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v infallible_a in_o teach_v the_o church_n so_o be_v the_o rest_n too_o as_o well_o as_o he_o the_o reason_n therefore_o of_o mention_v peter_n in_o particular_a be_v because_o christ_n foresee_v the_o temptation_n and_o lamentable_a fall_n of_o peter_n in_o deny_v christ_n with_o curse_v and_o oath_n from_o which_o he_o have_v need_n of_o a_o special_a conversion_n that_o god_n may_v not_o forsake_v he_o and_o give_v he_o up_o to_o a_o total_a fail_v of_o his_o faith_n 7._o two_o thing_n say_v bellarmine_n be_v here_o obtain_v for_o peter_n alone_o the_o one_o be_v that_o he_o himself_o shall_v never_o lose_v the_o faith_n nor_o fall_v as_o to_o his_o faith_n the_o second_o be_v that_o he_o as_o pope_n shall_v never_o teach_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o faith_n or_o that_o none_o shall_v ever_o be_v find_v in_o his_o seat_n that_o shall_v so_o do_v of_o which_o privilege_n say_v he_o perhaps_o the_o first_o do_v not_o descend_v to_o his_o successor_n but_o doubtless_o the_o last_o do_v but_o note_v here_o what_o a_o pass_v this_o learned_a cardinal_n have_v bring_v his_o great_a cause_n to_o 1._o the_o text_n speak_v but_o of_o one_o thing_n and_o not_o of_o two_o faith_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o cathedral_n determination_n be_v another_o do_v christ_n mean_v both_o when_o he_o name_v but_o one_o express_o it_o be_v only_o the_o first_o privilege_n that_o he_o promise_v peter_n and_o say_v not_o a_o word_n of_o the_o late_a it_o be_v his_o heart_n and_o not_o his_o tongue_n that_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o christ_n establish_v which_o be_v also_o evident_a by_o the_o issue_n for_o sure_a his_o tongue_n fail_v by_o speak_v against_o the_o faith_n when_o he_o curse_v and_o swear_v that_o he_o know_v not_o the_o man_n 2._o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o this_o privilege_n that_o his_o own_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v extend_v not_o perhaps_o to_o the_o pope_n so_o that_o for_o all_o this_o their_o faith_n may_v fail_v if_o so_o 1._o then_o the_o only_a privilege_n mention_v in_o the_o text_n extend_v not_o to_o they_o for_o it_o speak_v of_o no_o more_o the_o text_n promise_v they_o nothing_o to_o the_o pope_n but_o what_o it_o never_o promise_v to_o peter_n 2._o and_o if_o it_o do_v promise_v both_o privilege_n to_o peter_n that_o neither_o faith_n nor_o tongue_n shall_v fail_v how_o can_v bellarmine_n prove_v that_o one_o part_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n when_o he_o confess_v the_o
infallible_a while_o our_o suffering_n prove_v we_o heretical_a 4._o be_v it_o not_o ambition_n and_o desire_n of_o rule_n that_o be_v the_o very_a cause_n which_o they_o contend_v for_o what_o be_v the_o unreconcilable_a quarrel_n so_o much_o as_o that_o all_o the_o world_n will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o and_o yet_o the_o suffering_n of_o these_o man_n prove_v they_o infallible_a if_o one_o butcher_n henry_n the_o three_o of_o france_n and_o another_o henry_n the_o four_o and_o other_o will_v blow_v up_o the_o english_a parliament_n with_o gunpowder_n be_v the_o pope_n infallible_a if_o some_o of_o these_o be_v hang_v or_o what_o if_o some_o of_o they_o have_v suffer_v from_o infidel_n be_v not_o other_o as_o ready_a so_o to_o suffer_v as_o they_o and_o have_v suffer_v as_o much_o as_o they_o the_o next_o mark_n that_o he_o lay_v down_o be_v victory_n over_o all_o sort_n of_o enemy_n butler_n be_v it_o over_o their_o mind_n or_o over_o their_o body_n that_o they_o mean_v if_o the_o first_o who_o must_v be_v judge_n of_o their_o victory_n but_o themselves_o i_o never_o hear_v any_o of_o they_o plead_v their_o cause_n but_o in_o my_o judgement_n they_o have_v the_o worst_a there_o i●_n no_o party_n but_o may_v turn_v divers_z other_o to_o their_o opinion_n mahomet_n have_v get_v far_o more_o follower_n in_o the_o world_n than_o christ_n and_o heathenism_n than_o either_o if_o papist_n can_v turn_v all_o these_o why_o do_v they_o suffer_v themselves_o still_o to_o be_v confine_v to_o so_o small_a a_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o if_o it_o be_v victory_n over_o man_n body_n that_o they_o mean_v i_o say_v the_o like_a have_v not_o the_o turk_n a_o large_a dominion_n than_o the_o pope_n have_v they_o conquer_v the_o great_a turk_n the_o great_a mogul_n the_o grand_a cham_n of_o tartary_n &_o c_o be_v we_o not_o as_o infallible_a as_o they_o on_o this_o account_n when_o we_o conquer_v they_o it_o seem_v then_o when_o papist_n be_v so_o industrious_a to_o enlarge_v their_o dominion_n to_o destroy_v their_o enemy_n by_o poison_v or_o stab_v king_n or_o other_o mean_n it_o be_v that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o further_a testimony_n of_o their_o infallibility_n the_o last_o mark_n which_o the_o jesuit_n mention_v be_v the_o conversion_n of_o infidel_n but_o 1_o if_o that_o be_v a_o sure_a mark_n we_o be_v infallible_a as_o well_o as_o they_o for_o we_o have_v be_v mean_n of_o convert_v infidel_n and_o so_o have_v the_o greek_a church_n and_o other_o that_o disow_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n 2._o if_o that_o argument_n be_v good_a than_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o apostle_n but_o all_o that_o convert_v infidel_n at_o the_o first_o or_o after_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v infallible_a which_o sure_o they_o never_o pretend_v to_o 3._o if_o it_o will_v prove_v any_o body_n infallible_a it_o be_v like_a to_o prove_v they_o so_o that_o do_v convert_v any_o infidel_n than_o the_o pope_n that_o only_o give_v they_o leave_v or_o order_n to_o do_v it_o 4._o let_v they_o not_o boast_v too_o much_o of_o their_o conversion_n till_o we_o have_v a_o better_a character_n of_o their_o new_a make_v christian_n and_o a_o better_a report_n of_o their_o mean_n of_o conversion_n than_o acosta_n and_o other_o of_o their_o own_o jesuit_n give_v we_o who_o have_v be_v eye_n witness_n of_o the_o case_n to_o cut_v man_n off_o by_o thousand_o or_o million_o and_o force_v the_o rest_n to_o baptism_n as_o cattle_n to_o water_v when_o they_o have_v nothing_o of_o a_o christian_a but_o the_o name_n and_o that_o sign_n and_o some_o forget_v the_o name_n itself_o this_o be_v not_o a_o conversion_n much_o to_o be_v boast_v of_o nor_o must_v they_o think_v that_o all_o be_v christian_n that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n conquer_v for_o love_n of_o their_o gold_n and_o silver_n mine_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o convert_v infidel_n by_o a_o army_n but_o by_o the_o word_n and_o miracle_n but_o it_o be_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n soldier_n that_o have_v be_v the_o effectual_a preacher_n to_o work_v the_o conversion_n that_o you_o have_v most_o to_o glory_n in_o if_o the_o jesuit_n have_v put_v his_o proof_n into_o well_o form_v argument_n what_o stuff_n shall_v we_o have_v have_v so_o much_o for_o the_o answer_n to_o chill_a worth_n and_o the_o new_a fundamental_o of_o the_o romish_a faith_n by_o which_o they_o can_v prove_v their_o pope_n infallible_a without_o be_v behold_v to_o scripture_n for_o its_o help_n and_o i_o marvel_v not_o at_o their_o contempt_n of_o scripture-testimony_n to_o they_o unless_o there_o be_v more_o or_o more_o appearance_n for_o they_o then_o there_o be_v have_v consider_v the_o papist_n proof_n of_o their_o infallibility_n i_o shall_v next_o though_o it_o be_v more_o than_o the_o cause_n oblige_v i_o to_o say_v somewhat_o to_o prove_v the_o negative_a and_o so_o proceed_v to_o my_o second_o argument_n against_o they_o argu._n 2._o if_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o sound_a man_n or_o their_o sensible_a apprehension_n be_v infallible_a than_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o pretend_a general_n council_n be_v fallible_a but_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o sound_a man_n be_v infallible_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n i_o know_v not_o how_o we_o shall_v come_v near_a hand_n with_o a_o papist_n nor_o to_o plain_a deal_n then_o to_o argue_v from_o common_a sense_n and_o as_o to_o the_o antecedent_n either_o sense_n be_v infallible_a or_o it_o be_v not_o if_o it_o be_v i_o have_v that_o i_o seek_v if_o not_o then_o mark_v what_o follow_v 1._o then_o no_o man_n can_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v true_a for_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o all_o vanish_v if_o sense_n be_v not_o infallible_a if_o you_o plead_v the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o disciple_n no_o man_n be_v sure_a that_o he_o see_v they_o if_o you_o plead_v the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o christ_n no_o man_n be_v sure_a he_o see_v they_o and_o therefore_o can_v give_v no_o assurance_n of_o it_o to_o another_o all_o the_o disciple_n sense_n and_o the_o world_n sense_n be_v or_o may_v be_v for_o aught_o we_o know_v deceive_v nor_o be_v you_o sure_a that_o any_o write_n or_o tradition_n come_v down_o to_o we_o from_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o reader_n and_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o hearer_n may_v be_v deceive_v 2._o and_o then_o most_o certain_o the_o pope_n himself_o and_o all_o his_o clergy_n be_v fallible_a for_o they_o can_v be_v sure_a of_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n and_o follow_a church_n be_v not_o sure_a of_o nor_o can_v they_o be_v sure_a that_o in_o read_v and_o hear_v their_o eye_n deceive_v they_o not_o and_o i_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n do_v use_v their_o sense_n and_o by_o they_o receive_v these_o matter_n into_o their_o intellect_n nay_o if_o sense_n be_v fallible_a no_o man_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v tell_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o such_o place_n as_o rome_n or_o any_o such_o person_n as_o the_o pope_n at_o all_o or_o ever_o be_v nay_o what_o else_o can_v any_o man_n be_v sure_a of_o i_o suppose_v you_o will_v marvel_n why_o i_o bestow_v so_o many_o word_n on_o such_o a_o point_n but_o you_o see_v what_o man_n we_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o when_o all_o the_o quarrel_n between_o we_o must_v be_v issue_v by_o this_o point_n whether_o common_a sense_n be_v infallible_a for_o if_o it_o be_v we_o infallible_o carry_v the_o cause_n yea_o whether_o it_o be_v or_o be_v not_o as_o shall_v appear_v i_o come_v next_o therefore_o to_o prove_v the_o consequence_n and_o that_o i_o do_v thus_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o pretend_a general_n council_n be_v direct_o contradictory_n to_o the_o apprehension_n or_o judgement_n of_o common_a sense_n therefore_o if_o common_a sense_n be_v infallible_a the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v fallible_a the_o consequent_a be_v unquestionable_a the_o antecedent_n i_o prove_v by_o this_o know_a instance_n common_a sense_n take_v it_o to_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n that_o remain_v after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n say_v it_o be_v not_o bread_n nor_o wine_n that_o remain_v after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n therefore_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v direct_o contradictory_n to_o the_o apprehension_n of_o common_a sense_n for_o the_o first_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o man_n that_o ever_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n whether_o see_v feel_a smell_a and_o taste_v do_v not_o as_o plain_o take_v it_o to_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n as_o they_o do_v any_o other_o bread_n or_o wine_n at_o their_o own_o table_n and_o whether_o they_o can_v see_v or_o taste_v or_o smell_v
a_o covenant_n then_o when_o paul_n say_v this_o rock_n be_v christ_n it_o must_v proclaim_v that_o all_o the_o israelite_n sense_n be_v deceive_v that_o think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o true_a rock_n when_o a_o papist_n will_v confess_v that_o the_o meaning_n be_v this_o rock_n represent_v or_o signify_v christ_n as_o if_o among_o many_o image_n you_o shall_v say_v this_o be_v peter_n and_o this_o john_n and_o this_o paul_n this_o be_v plain_o to_o say_v this_o signify_v peter_n or_o represent_v he_o etc._n etc._n and_o do_v not_o proclaim_v that_o deceit_n of_o sense_n bellarmine_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v call_v in_o 1_o cor._n 10._o &_o 11._o bread_n and_o the_o cup_n six_o time_n over_o as_o after_o the_o consecration_n and_o here_o his_o shift_a answer_n be_v that_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o scripture_n what_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v as_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v call_v a_o serpent_n and_o so_o here_o he_o plead_v a_o trope_n good_a still_o the_o scripture_n call_v it_o bread_n six_o time_n near_o together_o after_o the_o consecration_n and_o it_o call_v it_o christ_n body_n once_o when_o his_o live_a body_n sit_v by_o now_o the_o question_n be_v which_o of_o these_o speech_n be_v tropical_a and_o we_o must_v believe_v bellarmine_n that_o the_o text_n which_o call_v it_o six_o time_n bread_n must_v needs_o be_v tropical_a and_o that_o which_o call_v it_o once_o christ_n body_n must_n need_v be_v understand_v without_o a_o trope_n and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o evidence_n they_o can_v bring_v that_o god_n have_v proclaim_v man_n sense_n to_o be_v fallible_a nay_o all_o that_o we_o need_v for_o our_o cause_n be_v but_o to_o take_v est_fw-la for_o significat_fw-la which_o be_v so_o common_a that_o one_o will_v think_v there_o shall_v not_o such_o unnatural_a absurdity_n be_v admit_v to_o avoid_v it_o as_o overthrow_v our_o humanity_n when_o we_o plead_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a body_n and_o that_o a_o true_a body_n may_v be_v see_v and_o feel_v because_o christ_n bid_v they_o luk._n 24._o see_v and_o feel_v for_o a_o spirit_n have_v not_o flesh_n and_o bone_n etc._n etc._n bellarmine_n answer_v that_o sense_n be_v infallible_a in_o positives_n and_o therefore_o thence_o we_o may_v say_v this_n be_v a_o body_n because_o i_o see_v itself_o but_o not_o in_o negative_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v say_v this_n be_v not_o a_o body_n because_o i_o see_v it_o not_o and_o what_o need_v we_o more_o than_o that_o which_o be_v here_o grant_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n than_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o this_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n because_o we_o see_v feel_v smell_v taste_v it_o yet_o no_o doubt_n we_o may_v also_o argue_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o natural_a body_n because_o it_o be_v not_o visible_a or_o sensible_a so_o much_o for_o this_o second_o argument_n which_o i_o may_v thus_o with_o full_a advantage_n enforce_v if_o sense_n be_v either_o fallible_a or_o infallible_a the_o pope_n be_v fallible_a but_o sense_n be_v either_o fallible_a or_o infallible_a therefore_o if_o sense_n be_v fallible_a the_o pope_n be_v fallible_a and_o all_o his_o church_n for_o their_o sense_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o follower_n be_v fallible_a ☜_o if_o sense_n be_v infallible_a the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v fallible_a because_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o all_o sound_a man_n take_v that_o for_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o they_o express_o say_v as_o the_o fide_fw-la to_o be_v believe_v be_v not_o either_o bread_n or_o wine_n argu._n 3_o if_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o pretend_a general_n council_n have_v err_v already_o then_o be_v they_o not_o infallible_a but_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o pretend_a general_n council_n have_v err_v already_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o infallible_a as_o the_o first_o argument_n be_v take_v from_o the_o no_o proof_n of_o his_o infallibility_n and_o the_o second_o from_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o mankind_n so_o the_o three_o be_v take_v from_o certain_a experience_n which_o be_v a_o medium_n so_o evident_a that_o their_o vain_a word_n and_o subtle_a evasion_n have_v the_o less_o force_n to_o elude_v or_o obscure_v it_o of_o the_o validity_n of_o the_o consequence_n there_o be_v no_o question_n can_v be_v make_v he_o that_o have_v err_v be_v not_o infallible_a all_o the_o doubt_n therefore_o be_v of_o the_o antecedent_n which_o have_v by_o unquestionable_a evidence_n of_o history_n be_v put_v out_o of_o doubt_n by_o our_o writer_n long_o ago_o i_o shall_v produce_v some_o few_o instance_n of_o many_o 14._o there_o be_v no_o less_o than_o forty_o pope_n who_o bellarmine_n himself_o take_v notice_n of_o as_o charge_v with_o error_n or_o heresy_n for_o who_o he_o frame_v such_o poor_a excuse_n that_o i_o shall_v think_v any_o impartial_a reader_n may_v receive_v satisfaction_n enough_o from_o bellarmine_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v too_o fallible_a yea_o that_o even_o judicial_o and_o in_o fundamental_o he_o may_v err_v do_v not_o pope_n liberius_n 9_o err_v judicial_o when_o he_o subscribe_v to_o the_o arrian_n confession_n in_o the_o council_n of_o sirmium_n libenti_fw-la animo_fw-la suscepi_fw-la in_o nullo_n contradicens_fw-la which_o the_o father_n condemn_v of_o heresy_n and_o to_o the_o council_n condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n as_o athanasius_n himself_o and_o many_o more_o witness_n do_v not_o pope_n vigilius_n err_v judicial_o when_o he_o condemn_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o general_n council_n for_o condemn_v dead_a heretic_n and_o when_o pope_n pelagius_n and_o gregory_n the_o first_o and_o adrian_z the_o first_o do_v all_o approve_v of_o the_o same_o sure_a one_o party_n of_o these_o pope_n err_v unless_o contradictorye_n may_v be_v true_a yea_o when_o pope_n vigilius_n do_v afterward_o revoke_v his_o own_o constitution_n occumenis_fw-la sure_o he_o err_v either_o in_o make_v or_o revoke_v it_o and_o so_o do_v pope_n paschalis_n when_o they_o give_v god_n thanks_o in_o open_a council_n that_o they_o hear_v the_o pope_n with_o his_o own_o mouth_n revok_v those_o grant_n which_o say_v they_o contain_v heresy_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v before_o make_v to_o the_o emperor_n 38._o though_o cajetans_n excuse_n be_v true_a that_o it_o be_v no_o heresy_n yet_o either_o the_o make_n or_o revoke_v be_v a_o error_n what_o will_v they_o invent_v at_o last_o to_o hide_v the_o nakedness_n of_o pope_n honorius_n who_o in_o two_o several_a general_n council_n be_v condemn_v for_o a_o monothelite_n heretic_n which_o he_o judicial_o persuade_v sergius_n to_o when_o he_o seek_v his_o judgement_n stapleton_n and_o many_o more_o of_o they_o confess_v the_o full_a certainty_n of_o the_o council_n condemn_v he_o of_o heresy_n but_o forsooth_o they_o say_v the_o council_n do_v mistake_v the_o case_n 7._o it_o seem_v then_o either_o a_o pope_n may_v be_v a_o heretic_n or_o a_o general_n council_n err_v moreover_o will_v any_o papist_n deny_v that_o pope_n stephen_n six_o and_o sergius_n err_v when_o 158._o they_o judicial_o decree_v that_o those_o shall_v be_v ordain_v again_o that_o be_v ordain_v by_o pope_n form●sus_n and_o of_o pope_n celestine_n error_n alphonsus_n a_o castro_n faith_n 4._o that_o he_o himself_o see_v it_o in_o the_o ancient_a decretal_n as_o his_o definition_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o he_o err_v as_o a_o private_a man_n and_o not_o as_o pope_n what_o can_v they_o say_v of_o pope_n john_n twenty_o two_o who_o deny_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o be_v admonish_v of_o his_o heresy_n by_o the_o doctor_n of_o paris_n as_o not_o only_a pope_n adrian_n the_o six_o joh._n gerson_n alphons_n a_o castro_n and_o other_o witness_n but_o bellarmine_n himself_o confess_v also_o but_o he_o excuse_v he_o because_o that_o opinion_n be_v not_o there_o define_v against_o and_o therefore_o be_v no_o heresy_n see_v here_o 1._o whether_o the_o papist_n do_v not_o make_v themselves_o a_o new_a faith_n and_o religion_n when_o they_o please_v and_o that_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n with_o they_o one_o year_n that_o be_v none_o the_o year_n before_o so_o that_o the_o novelty_n and_o the_o mutability_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v thus_o by_o themselves_o confess_v 2._o see_v here_o that_o a_o point_n declare_v in_o scripture_n and_o hold_v by_o the_o former_a church_n be_v no_o point_n of_o faith_n with_o they_o unless_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o a_o pope_n or_o general_n council_n 3._o see_v here_o what_o man_n bellarmine_n will_v make_v all_o the_o former_a pope_n to_o have_v be_v that_o have_v determine_v whether_o the_o soul_n be_v immortal_a or_o not_o 4._o chamier_n true_o note_v that_o bellarmine_n himself_o forgetful_o contradict_v himself_o and_o tell_v we_o elsewhere_o that_o innocent_a the_o three_o the_o ninteen_v pope_n before_o john_n twenty_o two_o have_v teach_v the_o contrary_a in_o express_a word_n i_o shall_v
speak_v against_o his_o own_o heart_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v nor_o sound_o imagine_v 2._o the_o infallible_a dictate_v of_o the_o pope_n while_o he_o err_v in_o mind_n shall_v be_v all_o either_o unreasonable_a act_n as_o be_v the_o word_n of_o one_o that_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v or_o interpretative_o lie_v for_o when_o a_o man_n speak_v contrary_a to_o his_o judgement_n if_o his_o word_n be_v true_a in_o themselves_o yet_o they_o be_v interpretative_o lie_v because_o he_o so_o take_v they_o and_o intend_v they_o as_o falsehood_n to_o deceive_v other_o for_o instance_n if_o pope_n john_n the_o 23._o that_o be_v depose_v by_o a_o general_n council_n upon_o article_n exhibit_v against_o he_o for_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v shall_v with_o his_o tongue_n have_v teach_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v this_o have_v be_v as_o lie_v to_o he_o though_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v most_o true_a and_o we_o must_v have_v a_o promise_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o clergy_n among_o all_o the_o liar_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v be_v the_o only_a infallible_a liar_n a_o happy_a generation_n of_o liar_n sure_a but_o where_o be_v that_o promise_n 3._o it_o be_v for_o the_o error_n of_o the_o tongue_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o mind_n that_o the_o clergy_n dispose_v liberius_n &_o felix_n and_o that_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n constance_n and_o basil_n depose_v the_o other_o pope_n above_o mention_v for_o 1._o they_o can_v not_o know_v their_o mind_n but_o by_o their_o word_n 2._o they_o charge_v they_o with_o the_o error_n of_o their_o tongue_n as_o well_o as_o mind_n argu._n 10._o if_o pope_n be_v infallible_a in_o the_o matter_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o than_o it_o must_v be_v by_o enthusiasm_n or_o prophetical_a inspiration_n but_o all_o pope_n be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o divine_a truth_n and_o some_o more_o notorious_o ignorant_a and_o yet_o neither_o alderman_n nor_o any_o of_o they_o for_o aught_o be_v ever_o prove_v be_v prophet_n or_o divine_o inspire_v therefore_o they_o be_v not_o infallible_a for_o the_o major_a its_o plain_a that_o as_o no_o err_a man_n must_v speak_v against_o his_o own_o mind_n if_o he_o be_v infallible_a so_o a_o ignorant_a man_n in_o those_o point_n must_v 1._o either_o have_v his_o ignorance_n cure_v sudden_o by_o prophetical_a inspiration_n or_o else_o 2._o must_v speak_v as_o in_o a_o ecstasy_n without_o or_o beside_o his_o own_o mind_n there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n imaginable_a and_o as_o for_o the_o minor_a i_o prove_v both_o part_n of_o it_o 1._o that_o pope_n be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o divine_a truth_n i_o prove_v thus_o 1._o they_o that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o truth_n reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o divine_a truth_n for_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n all_o that_o be_v therein_o reveal_v be_v divine_a truth_n but_o pope_n have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o thing_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n therefore_o i_o need_v not_o sure_o stand_v to_o prove_v the_o minor_a for_o they_o confess_v it_o themselves_o and_o if_o the_o pope_n understand_v all_o the_o scripture_n he_o be_v sure_o the_o most_o damnable_a sinner_n in_o the_o world_n for_o not_o reveal_v his_o knowledge_n to_o other_o 2._o yea_o some_o of_o they_o have_v be_v so_o notorious_o ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a that_o their_o own_o alphonsus_n a_o castro_n say_v advers._fw-la hare_n li._n 1._o c._n 4._o that_o it_o be_v certain_a some_o pope_n be_v so_o unlearned_a that_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o grammar_n and_o sure_a if_o they_o that_o understand_v not_o any_o hebrew_n or_o greek_a which_o be_v the_o language_n in_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v no_o nor_o the_o latin_a grammar_n shall_v understand_v all_o the_o bible_n and_o err_v in_o nothing_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v by_o a_o miracle_n and_o by_o prophetical_a inspiration_n 2._o but_o that_o all_o pope_n be_v not_o inspire_v prophet_n nor_o illuminate_v by_o miracle_n i_o will_v leave_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o papist_n themselves_o read_v platina_n stella_n yea_o or_o baronius_n himself_o or_o if_o they_o have_v any_o other_o that_o be_v a_o more_o notorious_a parasite_n to_o they_o and_o let_v they_o be_v judge_n argu._n 11._o if_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v infallible_a than_o it_o be_v either_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v or_o but_o in_o some_o if_o he_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v believe_v or_o decide_v then_o will_v it_o follow_v 1._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o most_o cruel_o wicked_a man_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o great_a enemy_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o church_n that_o will_v suffer_v the_o church_n to_o lie_v in_o so_o much_o ignorance_n and_o contention_n and_o will_v not_o reveal_v the_o truth_n to_o reconcile_v and_o enlighten_v they_o why_o do_v he_o not_o write_v a_o infallible_a commentary_n on_o all_o the_o bible_n to_o perfect_v our_o knowledge_n and_o end_n all_o our_o quarrel_n and_o why_o do_v he_o not_o write_v a_o infallible_a summary_n of_o all_o his_o superadded_a tradition_n have_v not_o christ_n tell_v he_o that_o no_o man_n light_v a_o candle_n to_o put_v it_o under_o a_o bushel_n but_o where_o it_o may_v be_v see_v of_o all_o 2._o why_o do_v not_o one_o pope_n reveal_v that_o which_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o reveal_v but_o leave_v it_o to_o successor_n one_o after_o another_o to_o do_v it_o by_o degree_n dare_v they_o say_v that_o there_o be_v any_o point_n of_o faith_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o necessary_a to_o this_o age_n to_o know_v which_o be_v not_o meet_v to_o be_v reveal_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o last_o or_o former_a age_n 3._o why_o do_v so_o many_o of_o themselves_o yea_o their_o general_a council_n so_o much_o contradict_v their_o pope_n in_o many_o thing_n if_o he_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n and_o all_o of_o they_o confess_v that_o either_o a_o pope_n or_o a_o council_n may_v err_v but_o if_o it_o be_v but_o some_o thing_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a in_o then_o how_o shall_v we_o be_v sure_a which_o be_v those_o some_o can_v we_o know_v before_o he_o disclose_v they_o or_o only_o after_o i_o suppose_v they_o will_v say_v it_o be_v in_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o determine_v or_o declare_v but_o if_o that_o be_v the_o rule_n to_o know_v the_o extent_n of_o his_o infallibility_n by_o then_o i_o every_o pope_n begin_v to_o be_v infallible_a when_o he_o begin_v to_o determine_v or_o declare_v and_o not_o before_o 2._o and_o then_o every_o pope_n increase_v in_o his_o infallibility_n as_o he_o increase_v his_o decretal_n or_o canon_n 3._o and_o then_o one_o pope_n be_v much_o more_o infallible_a than_o other_o who_o have_v make_v more_o decree_n than_o other_o 4._o and_o then_o some_o pope_n be_v never_o infallible_a who_o never_o make_v any_o decree_n or_o determination_n or_o exposition_n at_o all_o so_o that_o their_o cause_n be_v lose_v if_o their_o actual_a discovery_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o extent_n of_o their_o infallibility_n and_o yet_o i_o can_v imagine_v what_o else_o they_o can_v say_v that_o may_v have_v any_o appearance_n of_o consist_v with_o their_o interest_n for_o it_o be_v either_o a_o positive_a or_o a_o negative_a infallibility_n which_o they_o mean_v and_o ascribe_v to_o their_o church_n if_o a_o positive_a then_o 1._o all_o the_o foresay_a absurdity_n unavoidable_o follow_v whether_o they_o say_v that_o they_o can_v infallible_o teach_v we_o all_o thing_n and_o will_v not_o or_o but_o some_o but_o if_o it_o be_v a_o negative_a infallibility_n which_o they_o maintain_v viz._n that_o the_o church_n shall_v never_o teach_v any_o false_a doctrine_n or_o the_o pope_n shall_v never_o deceive_v we_o by_o obtrude_a any_o error_n though_o withal_o he_o may_v possible_o teach_v we_o but_o part_n of_o the_o truth_n yea_o the_o necessary_a truth_n yea_o perhaps_o teach_v we_o none_o at_o all_o i_o say_v if_o this_o be_v their_o meaning_n than_o every_o infant_n or_o bird_n or_o beast_n have_v as_o glorious_a a_o privilege_n as_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n for_o every_o infant_n and_o bruit_n be_v so_o infallible_a that_o we_o be_v certain_a they_o will_v not_o deceive_v the_o church_n by_o teach_v any_o error_n perhaps_o they_o will_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v positive_o infallible_a as_o a_o sufficient_a teacher_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o thing_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la at_o that_o time_n or_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o negative_o infallible_a in_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v not_o the_o fide_fw-la or_o necessary_a to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o either_o such_o point_n be_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la and_o
necessary_a before_o the_o pope_n dedeclare_v they_o so_o and_o he_o therefore_o declare_v they_o so_o because_o they_o be_v so_o or_o else_o he_o declare_v they_o de_fw-la fide_fw-la and_o necessary_a before_o they_o be_v so_o that_o by_o declare_v they_o so_o he_o may_v make_v they_o so_o if_o the_o first_o 1._o then_o the_o papist_n have_v lose_v their_o cause_n for_o that_o be_v it_o which_o they_o deny_v at_o lest_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la though_o not_o in_o se_fw-la as_o they_o use_v to_o distinguish_v 2._o and_o then_o its_o plain_a that_o no_o pope_n have_v be_v positive_o infallible_a in_o necessariis_fw-la or_o all_o point_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la for_o no_o one_o have_v declare_v all_o nor_o be_v they_o yet_o all_o say_v they_o declare_v by_o they_o but_o every_o pope_n may_v still_o add_v more_o and_o who_o know_v when_o we_o shall_v have_v all_o but_o if_o they_o take_v the_o late_a way_n than_o 1._o they_o suppose_v that_o god_n word_n how_o express_a soever_o do_v not_o make_v a_o point_n to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o necessary_a till_o the_o pope_n declare_v it_o so_o at_o lest_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la and_o how_o it_o can_v be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o necessary_a any_o other_o way_n than_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la they_o shall_v do_v well_o to_o declare_v for_o that_o which_o be_v credendum_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la aliquo_fw-la credendum_fw-la that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v must_v be_v believe_v by_o some_o body_n and_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a be_v necessary_a to_o some_o one_o so_o that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v no_o gospel_n with_o they_o nor_o the_o law_n of_o god_n any_o law_n though_o we_o read_v it_o and_o hear_v it_o a_o thousand_o time_n till_o the_o pope_n tell_v we_o by_o parcel_n the_o meaning_n of_o its_o particular_a word_n and_o sentence_n 2._o they_o make_v the_o pope_n act_n to_o go_v before_o their_o object_n which_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o action_n while_o they_o make_v he_o to_o declare_v a_o point_n to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la that_o it_o may_v become_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la for_o to_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v so_o suppose_v that_o it_o be_v so_o and_o not_o only_o that_o it_o will_v or_o shall_v be_v so_o de_fw-mi futuro_fw-la 3._o and_o so_o they_o make_v all_o the_o pope_n infallible_a declaration_n exposition_n and_o determination_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la to_o be_v lie_n for_o if_o he_o declare_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v necessary_a before_o it_o be_v necessary_a or_o declare_v this_o or_o that_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n before_o it_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la before_o it_o be_v so_o what_o be_v this_o but_o plain_o lie_v but_o if_o they_o say_v that_o he_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o necessary_a only_o for_o the_o future_a and_o not_o to_o have_v be_v so_o before_o this_o declaration_n than_o the_o forementioned_a absurdity_n fall_v upon_o they_o and_o also_o 1._o the_o pope_n be_v then_o a_o gospel-maker_n and_o the_o law_n giver_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o in_o spiritual_n and_o internal_o and_o consequent_o it_o be_v he_o that_o be_v the_o king_n of_o the_o church_n who_o have_v the_o legislative_a power_n and_o without_o who_o nothing_o that_o christ_n have_v say_v shall_v bind_v we_o 2._o then_o the_o church_n faith_n be_v mutable_a and_o in_o a_o continual_a change_n by_o new_a addition_n for_o the_o decree_n or_o exposition_n of_o every_o pope_n do_v make_v more_o article_n of_o faith_n than_o be_v before_o 3._o then_o the_o present_a papist_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n as_o their_o forefather_n or_o their_o forefather_n not_o of_o the_o same_o with_o they_o nor_o do_v they_o go_v to_o heaven_n by_o the_o same_o way_n for_o according_a to_o their_o own_o doctrine_n if_o the_o present_a age_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o believe_v as_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la many_o thing_n more_o than_o the_o former_a age_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v they_o can_v be_v save_v 4._o and_o then_o it_o be_v evident_a unmercifulness_n in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o make_v more_o exposition_n decree_n or_o determination_n and_o so_o to_o make_v we_o of_o this_o age_n so_o much_o work_v to_o do_v before_o we_o can_v get_v to_o heaven_n and_o escape_v damnation_n which_o our_o forefather_n never_o have_v to_o do_v i_o know_v falkland_n one_o of_o they_o reply_v to_o this_o that_o these_o addition_n be_v no_o cruelty_n because_o they_o make_v not_o salvation_n more_o difficult_a but_o facilitate_v that_o which_o be_v necessary_a before_o or_o to_o that_o sense_n but_o 1._o it_o seem_v then_o that_o somewhat_o be_v necessary_a and_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la before_o the_o pope_n define_v determine_v or_o declare_v they_o so_o by_o that_o time_n we_o be_v plain_o tell_v which_o those_o point_n be_v the_o papist_n that_o undertake_v and_o perform_v it_o will_v find_v himself_o at_o a_o sad_a loss_n 2._o but_o be_v this_o man_n serious_a do_v he_o think_v indeed_o that_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o believe_v the_o apostle_n creed_n than_o to_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n basil_n constance_n lateran_n with_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o all_o the_o decretal_n both_o the_o pope_n and_o isidore_n meccator_n alius_fw-la peccator_fw-la for_o instance_n before_o the_o pope_n determine_v the_o other_o day_n for_o the_o molinist_n against_o some_o part_n of_o the_o dominican_n jansenian_a doctrine_n both_o party_n may_v have_v go_v to_o heaven_n but_o now_o the_o poor_a dominican_n must_v change_v part_n of_o their_o doctrine_n or_o go_v to_o hell_n fire_n i_o demand_v now_o whether_o the_o pope_n determination_n have_v not_o make_v salvation_n hard_a to_o many_o then_o before_o i_o appeal_v to_o all_o the_o thomist_n dominican_n jansenian_o whether_o the_o pope_n have_v facilitated_a their_o salvation_n by_o this_o determination_n i_o appeal_v to_o tho._n whites_n friendly_a combat_n with_o francisc_n macedo_n &_o to_o the_o late_a animadversion_n of_o the_o french_a doctor_n on_o the_o pope_n determination_n further_o i_o add_v that_o if_o all_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n positive_a be_v only_o in_o point_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n than_o many_o a_o private_a doctor_n nay_o every_o christian_a man_n or_o woman_n be_v at_o present_a as_o infallible_a as_o the_o pope_n for_o it_o imply_v a_o contradiction_n to_o be_v a_o true_a christian_a and_o not_o to_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v essential_a to_o christianity_n or_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o de_fw-mi praesenti_fw-la &_o in_fw-la sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la but_o de_fw-la futuro_fw-la &_o in_fw-la sensu_fw-la diviso_fw-la that_o they_o mean_v it_o that_o be_v that_o another_o man_n may_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n but_o the_o pope_n can_v 1._o clean_n contrary_a we_o maintain_v and_o the_o papist_n confess_v that_o no_o elect_a person_n shall_v fall_v quite_o from_o the_o faith_n 2._o but_o a_o reprobate_a pope_n may_v witness_n john_n 23._o and_o many_o another_o so_o much_o for_o that_o argument_n argu._n 12._o if_o every_o pope_n be_v infallible_a positive_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o in_o expound_v all_o scripture_n than_o all_o pope_n be_v of_o equal_a understanding_n and_o fidelity_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o scripture_n for_o the_o most_o learned_a wise_a and_o pious_a can_v go_v no_o high_o but_o to_o be_v able_a infallible_o to_o interpret_v all_o scripture_n and_o declare_v all_o god_n will_v concern_v our_o faith_n and_o duty_n but_o sure_a all_o pope_n be_v not_o equal_a none_o of_o those_o child_n or_o dunce_n that_o alphonsus_n a_o castro_n say_v understand_v not_o the_o grammar_n be_v equal_a to_o pius_n 2._o or_o adrian_n the_o 6._o argu._n 13._o if_o every_o pope_n be_v infallible_a then_o study_v learning_n consultation_n yea_o and_o council_n be_v needless_a for_o the_o most_o unlearned_a pope_n be_v as_o infallible_a as_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o after_o all_o the_o study_n in_o the_o world_n consultation_n and_o advice_n of_o general_n council_n he_o can_v he_o but_o infallible_a and_o so_o say_v they_o he_o be_v before_o if_o they_o say_v still_o that_o before_o he_o be_v but_o negative_o infallible_a i_o say_v again_o so_o be_v a_o block_n a_o infant_n or_o a_o idiot_n but_o that_o study_v learning_n consultation_n and_o council_n be_v not_o needless_a i_o suppose_v all_o papist_n will_v grant_v therefore_o they_o must_v grant_v that_o all_o pope_n be_v not_o infallible_a argu._n 14._o notorious_a ungodly_a man_n that_o live_v in_o murder_n fornication_n incest_n sodomy_n blasphemy_n etc._n etc._n have_v no_o promise_n from_o god_n nor_o any_o other_o assurance_n of_o infallibility_n but_o such_o be_v many_o pope_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n the_o major_n i_o prove_v from_o many_o scripture_n 2_o thess_n 2.10_o 11._o
concilii_fw-la sententia_fw-la magis_fw-la tenentur_fw-la cujus_fw-la antiquior_fw-la &_o p●tior_fw-la est_fw-la authoritas_fw-la that_o be_v as_o oft_o as_o we_o find_v in_o the_o act_n of_o council_n disagree_v judgement_n let_v we_o hold_v the_o judgement_n of_o that_o council_n which_o have_v the_o more_o ancient_a and_o the_o great_a authority_n but_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o adversary_n here_o may_v spare_v we_o more_o labour_n who_o acknowledge_v that_o a_o general_n council_n though_o right_o congregat_v and_o though_o the_o pope_n legate_n concur_v may_v yet_o err_v in_o the_o faith_n if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o approve_v or_o confirm_v their_o decree_n so_o that_o when_o they_o say_v that_o all_o the_o church_n can_v err_v and_o therefore_o a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v their_o own_o meaning_n be_v that_o one_o man_n can_v err_v but_o all_o the_o church_n viz._n a_o general_n council_n without_o he_o may_v err_v argu._n 19_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o roman_a church_n be_v never_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n or_o father_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o now_o to_o be_v receive_v the_o antecedent_n be_v so_o full_o prove_v by_o our_o writer_n and_o so_o easy_o discernible_a by_o those_o that_o read_v the_o writing_n of_o those_o time_n that_o there_o need_v not_o any_o more_o to_o be_v say_v that_o which_o i_o shall_v produce_v to_o this_o pupose_v shall_v be_v anon_o to_o prove_v the_o follow_a point_n and_o this_o together_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o refer_v they_o to_o bishop_n jewel_n cham●er_n bishop_n usher_n doctor_n white_a who_o with_o many_o more_o have_v full_o prove_v this_o argu._n 20._o if_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o authorize_v judge_n of_o scripture_n nor_o our_o faith_n to_o be_v resolve_v into_o his_o judgement_n or_o the_o judgement_n of_o his_o church_n then_o be_v he_o not_o the_o infallible_a judge_n of_o scripture_n and_o of_o controversy_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o he_o that_o be_v no_o judge_n can_v be_v no_o infallible_a judge_n nor_o do_v he_o need_v infallibility_n to_o qualify_v he_o for_o a_o work_n which_o he_o be_v never_o call_v to_o nor_o do_v at_o all_o belong_v to_o he_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n as_o a_o private_a doctor_n or_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v make_v by_o they_o the_o subject_n of_o infallibility_n but_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o suppose_a head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n authorize_v to_o interpret_v scripture_n and_o to_o judge_v of_o all_o controversy_n of_o faith_n into_o who_o judgement_n at_o least_o with_o his_o clergy_n our_o faith_n they_o think_v must_v be_v resolve_v if_o therefore_o we_o can_v prove_v the_o nullity_n of_o the_o subject_n we_o do_v thereby_o prove_v the_o nullity_n of_o the_o adjunct_n and_o this_o lead_v we_o up_o to_o the_o three_o question_n which_o we_o have_v now_o to_o deal_v with_o quest_n 3._o whether_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v into_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a pretend_v authoritative_a judgement_n or_o whether_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o infallibility_n be_v the_o thing_n first_o to_o be_v know_v and_o thence_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n or_o christian_a religion_n to_o be_v receive_v as_o upon_o his_o judgement_n but_o because_o this_o be_v not_o the_o principal_a point_n intend_v in_o this_o dispute_n and_o because_o there_o be_v enough_o say_v to_o it_o in_o the_o begin_n on_o the_o by_o and_o because_o i_o have_v say_v yet_o more_o for_o explication_n of_o the_o whole_a matter_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o late_a edition_n of_o the_o saint_n rest_v i_o shall_v therefore_o say_v but_o little_a to_o it_o now_o reserve_v a_o full_a handle_n it_o if_o necessary_a to_o a_o fit_a season_n only_o i_o shall_v here_o add_v a_o few_o more_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n or_o roman_a church_n have_v no_o such_o authority_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o scripture_n or_o controversy_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n and_o then_o i_o shall_v add_v a_o few_o word_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o must_v believe_v in_o christ_n and_o receive_v his_o doctrine_n before_o we_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o receive_v his_o pretend_a authority_n and_o judgement_n that_o be_v without_o it_o arg._n 1._o if_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o consistory_n must_v be_v the_o universal_a governor_n and_o judge_n to_o all_o the_o chrian_a world_n then_o must_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christistian_a world_n be_v ungoverned_a and_o have_v no_o recourse_n to_o their_o judge_n but_o the_o consequent_a will_v be_v deny_v by_o themselves_o therefore_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n the_o proof_n of_o the_o consequence_n be_v most_o obvious_a and_o certain_a from_o the_o pope_n natural_a incapacity_n and_o insufficiency_n for_o such_o a_o work_n and_o so_o of_o his_o consistory_n it_o be_v natural_o impossible_a that_o the_o pope_n shall_v perform_v the_o work_n of_o this_o government_n to_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n therefore_o the_o consequence_n be_v good_a he_o can_v make_v know_v his_o determination_n to_o all_o if_o all_o man_n through_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o have_v such_o doubt_n to_o be_v resolve_v as_o his_o holiness_n suppose_v belong_v to_o he_o proper_o to_o resolve_v shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o he_o for_o resolution_n o_o how_o much_o will_v the_o way_n to_o rome_n be_v beat_v and_o frequent_v what_o a_o concourse_n will_v be_v about_o his_o holiness_n door_n what_o time_n will_v he_o have_v to_o resolve_v those_o million_o of_o man_n if_o any_o difference_n or_o difficulty_n arise_v in_o aethiopia_n or_o at_o the_o antipode_n before_o they_o go_v or_o send_v to_o rome_n for_o resolution_n and_o receive_v a_o answer_n the_o person_n be_v like_a to_o be_v in_o another_o world_n where_o they_o will_v have_v a_o more_o infallible_a resolution_n and_o if_o they_o live_v to_o see_v the_o return_n of_o their_o messenger_n they_o must_v take_v it_o on_o the_o trust_n of_o their_o word_n that_o this_o be_v indeed_o his_o holiness_n resolution_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la there_o be_v so_o few_o people_n on_o earth_n even_o of_o the_o papist_n themselves_o that_o be_v real_o goveren_v or_o resolve_v by_o the_o pope_n himself_o nor_o know_v what_o he_o be_v or_o what_o be_v his_o mind_n but_o all_o be_v do_v by_o his_o missionaryes_n or_o delegate_n and_o if_o the_o pope_n can_v delegate_v his_o power_n to_o other_o and_o make_v so_o many_o other_o also_o infallible_a than_o infallibility_n be_v not_o proper_a to_o himself_o and_o then_o why_o may_v not_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o infallible_a who_o be_v send_v by_o christ_n as_o these_o be_v that_o be_v send_v by_o he_o argu._n 2._o if_o the_o pope_n be_v such_o a_o universal_a governor_n and_o judge_n than_o all_o pope_n must_v needs_o be_v damn_v for_o utter_v neglect_n of_o the_o work_n of_o their_o office_n for_o sure_a when_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v so_o much_o depend_v on_o the_o office_n of_o the_o head_n it_o can_v but_o be_v damnable_a in_o he_o to_o be_v a_o neglecter_n of_o the_o work_n of_o that_o office_n to_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n but_o he_o must_v avoidable_a neglect_n i_o mean_v omit_v that_o work_n which_o it_o i●_n impossible_a for_o he_o to_o perform_v therefore_o what_o i_o have_v further_o to_o say_v against_o the_o resolve_v of_o our_o faith_n into_o his_o judgement_n shall_v be_v contain_v in_o these_o few_o question_n follow_v quest_n 1._o do_v he_o not_o contradict_v the_o very_a definition_n of_o a_o pope_n that_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o must_v first_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v a_o infallible_a pope_n before_o we_o can_v believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n for_o a_o roman_a pope_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n the_o successor_n of_o saint_n peter_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o can_v he_o be_v thus_o know_v by_o a_o man_n that_o know_v not_o or_o believe_v not_o that_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o saviour_n and_o principal_a head_n and_o who_o be_v suppose_v to_o send_v he_o quest_n 2._o and_o do_v it_o not_o contradict_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o church_n to_o say_v that_o we_o must_v believe_v the_o church_n before_o we_o can_v believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n for_o what_o be_v a_o church_n but_o a_o society_n of_o christian_n that_o be_v man_n profess_v the_o christian_a faith_n and_o how_o can_v they_o know_v that_o such_o man_n be_v christian_n or_o profess_v that_o faith_n before_o they_o know_v what_o that_o faith_n be_v and_o how_o can_v they_o know_v that_o they_o be_v to_o
be_v credit_v as_o christian_n before_o they_o believe_v that_o christianity_n itself_o be_v of_o credit_n q_o 3_o be_v there_o any_o man_n breathe_v that_o can_v bring_v sufficient_a argument_n to_o prove_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n 2._o and_o that_o this_o church_n be_v infallible_a 3._o and_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o papist_n be_v this_o church_n before_o their_o hearer_n have_v receive_v or_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o they_o can_v why_o have_v they_o not_o fall_v close_o to_o work_v in_o this_o necessary_a point_n when_o they_o know_v how_o much_o it_o will_v do_v to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o whole_a if_o they_o pretend_v such_o antecedent_n proof_n by_o miracle_n as_o the_o apostle_n prove_v the_o doctrine_n by_o i_o have_v show_v the_o vanity_n of_o this_o pretence_n against_o knot_n before_o and_o we_o must_v still_o desire_v they_o if_o it_o be_v miracle_n that_o be_v their_o first_o witness_n to_o let_v we_o see_v or_o have_v certain_a proof_n of_o those_o miracle_n we_o protest_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o we_o be_v hearty_o willing_a to_o see_v they_o and_o know_v of_o they_o if_o they_o be_v true_a but_o though_o we_o have_v live_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o papist_n all_o our_o life_n yet_o can_v we_o never_o to_o this_o day_n see_v any_o such_o matter_n from_o they_o nor_o hear_v so_o much_o as_o of_o any_o probable_a proof_n of_o any_o and_o will_v they_o have_v we_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o salvation_n to_o believe_v every_o prate_a boaster_n that_o will_v tell_v we_o of_o miracle_n and_o show_v we_o no_o such_o thing_n nor_o any_o proof_n of_o they_o quest_n 4._o whether_o those_o that_o do_v not_o go_v this_o most_o absurd_a way_n of_o prove_v their_o church_n infallible_a to_o a_o infidel_n that_o yet_o believe_v not_o god_n word_n and_o so_o by_o mean_n antecedent_n to_o the_o belief_n of_o scripture_n must_v not_o unavoidable_o confess_v that_o god_n word_n must_v be_v first_o believe_v before_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n infallibility_n or_o authority_n and_o consequent_o our_o faith_n depend_v not_o in_o they_o nor_o be_v resolve_v into_o they_o or_o else_o they_o be_v inextricable_o ensnare_v in_o the_o popish_a circle_n and_o contradict_o do_v make_v two_o primo_fw-la credenda_fw-la the_o church_n or_o pope_n the_o first_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o yet_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v first_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o do_v not_o hold_v vane_n knot_n and_o other_o of_o they_o see_v this_o who_o therefore_o shun_v the_o circle_n and_o use_v not_o the_o old_a shift_n of_o becanus_n and_o other_o to_o blind_v the_o eye_n of_o those_o that_o see_v they_o in_o it_o whether_o i_o wrong_v they_o h._n holden_n himself_o a_o englishman_n and_o doctor_n of_o paris_n shall_v be_v judge_n who_o thus_o commend_v his_o own_o new_a devise_v foundation_n or_o resolution_n of_o the_o faith_n in_o his_o divini_fw-la fid_fw-we analy_n li._n 1._o c._n 9_o pag._n 180._o exit_fw-la quibus_fw-la patet_fw-la ha●●_n christianae_n fidei_fw-la analysim_fw-la haud_fw-la in●idore_fw-la in_o labyrinthum_fw-la vulgarem_fw-la &_o circular_a perfugium_fw-la quo_fw-la solent_fw-la theologi_fw-la passim_fw-la involvi_fw-la qui_fw-la fidei_fw-la resolutionem_fw-la juxta_fw-la communem_fw-la &_o parum_fw-la attente_fw-la examinatam_fw-la opini●●●●_n conferuunt_fw-la as_o effingunt_fw-la quarenti_fw-la namque_fw-la und●_n noverint_fw-la scripturam_fw-la esse_fw-la revelatum_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la respondent_fw-la ex_fw-la universae_fw-la consentientis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la assertione_fw-la quibus_fw-la si_fw-la iterum_fw-la fiet_fw-la interrogatis_fw-la unde_fw-la sciverint_fw-la unanimeus_a hanc_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la assertionem_fw-la esse_fw-la ab_fw-la errore_fw-la liberam_fw-la seu_fw-la infallibilem_fw-la respondent_fw-la ex_fw-la revelat●_fw-la dei_fw-la verbo_fw-la adeo_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la audentes_fw-la fidem_fw-la divinam_fw-la in_o certitudine_fw-la &_o evidentia_fw-la naturali_fw-la fundare_fw-la in_fw-la circulum_fw-la hunc_fw-la inevitabiliter_fw-la illabuntur_fw-la &_o in_o orbem_fw-la turpissime_fw-la saltantes_fw-la fidem_fw-la quam_fw-la ipsa_fw-la prima_fw-la ratio_fw-la format_n &_o efficit_fw-la rationis_fw-la experem_fw-la reddunt_fw-la voluntque_fw-la homines_fw-la rationales_fw-la mentis_fw-la ac_fw-la judicii_fw-la partioipes_fw-la in_fw-la fidei_fw-la assensu_fw-la certiores_fw-la esse_fw-la quam_fw-la vel_fw-la ratio_fw-la postulat_fw-la vel_fw-la approbat_fw-la hasitant_n quip_n theologi_fw-la quidam_fw-la asseverare_fw-la &_o agnoscere_fw-la quod_fw-la omne_fw-la argumenta_fw-la etiam_fw-la firmissima_fw-la omnesque_fw-la rationes_fw-la item_n evidentissimae_fw-la quibus_fw-la universam_fw-la fidei_fw-la divinae_fw-la &_o catholicae_fw-la traditionem_fw-la solidam_fw-la erroris_fw-la immunem_fw-la &_o infallibilem_fw-la esse_fw-la demonstramus_fw-la adeo_fw-la veritatem_fw-la hanc_fw-la evincant_a ut_fw-la nulla_fw-la prorsue_v subsit_fw-la aberrationis_fw-la facultas_fw-la ideoque_fw-la ●pinantu●_n christianorum_fw-la a●imos_fw-la adhuc_fw-la ita_fw-la vacillantes_fw-la &_o fluctuantes_fw-la derelictos_fw-la esse_fw-la ut_fw-la privatum_fw-la aliquem_fw-la &_o singularem_fw-la instinctum_fw-la pernecessarium_fw-la autument_fw-la quo_fw-la omni_fw-la fidei_fw-la christianae_n assensui_fw-la certitudo_fw-la &_o infallibilitas_fw-la divina_fw-la at_o ajunt_fw-la attribuatur_fw-la nos_fw-la antem_fw-la levibu●_n hisce_fw-la &_o voluntariis_fw-la opinationibus_fw-la fidei_fw-la divinae_fw-la &_o religionis_fw-la christianae_n certitudinem_fw-la &_o soliditatem_fw-la inniti_fw-la aut_fw-la fundari_fw-la nequaquam_fw-la judicamus_fw-la that_o be_v in_o english_a from_o hence_o its_o evident_a that_o this_o resolution_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n do_v not_o fall_v into_o the_o common_a labyrinth_n and_o circular_a shift_n in_o which_o divine_n be_v common_o wont_a to_o be_v involve_v who_o do_v frame_v and_o fashion_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o common_a and_o unheedful_o examine_v opinion_n for_o when_o they_o be_v ask_v how_o they_o know_v then_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o reveal_v word_n of_o god_n they_o answer_n by_o the_o assertion_n of_o the_o universal_a consent_a church_n and_o if_o they_o be_v again_o ask_v how_o they_o know_v that_o this_o unanimous_a assertion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v free_a from_o error_n or_o infallible_a they_o answer_v by_o the_o reveal_v word_n of_o god_n so_o that_o not_o dare_v to_o found_v divine_a faith_n in_o natural_a certaintainty_n and_o evidence_n they_o unavidable_o slide_v into_o this_o circle_n most_o filthy_o dance_v in_o a_o ring_n or_o round_o the_o faith_n which_o the_o first_o reason_n form_v and_o effect_v they_o make_v void_a of_o reason_n and_o will_v have_v reasonable_a man_n who_o have_v understanding_n and_o judgement_n to_o be_v more_o certain_a in_o the_o assent_n of_o faith_n than_o reason_n do_v either_o require_v or_o allow_v for_o some_o divine_n etc._n etc._n hear_v you_o see_v a_o learned_a papist_n confess_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v common_o entangle_v in_o this_o circle_n and_o filthy_o dance_v in_o a_o round_a and_o will_v make_v our_o faith_n a_o unreasonable_a thing_n let_v knot_n note_v this_o that_o will_v make_v chillingworth_n a_o socinian_n and_o a_o infidel_n for_o make_v faith_n a_o reasanable_a act_n and_o let_v the_o common_a sort_n of_o papist_n note_v this_o that_o deny_v faith_n to_o have_v any_o evidence_n and_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v according_a to_o this_o man_n judgement_n on_o what_o foundation_n the_o generality_n of_o papist_n do_v build_v their_o faith_n and_o what_o a_o faith_n it_o be_v that_o have_v such_o a_o foundation_n yea_o and_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v whether_o the_o wise_a sort_n of_o papist_n begin_v not_o to_o change_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o how_o near_o they_o begin_v to_o draw_v to_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o the_o resolution_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o this_o same_o doctor_n do_v well_o disprove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n pag._n 179._o say_v own_o quidem_fw-la episcopi_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la successores_fw-la sunt_fw-la apostolos_fw-la veer_fw-mi ade●_n confirmatos_fw-la in_o gratia_fw-la fuisse_fw-la ut_fw-la infallibiles_fw-la omnino_fw-la seu_fw-la in_o doctrina_fw-la christiana_n tradenda_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la erroris_fw-la periculo_fw-la immunes_fw-la fuerint_fw-la agnoscit_fw-la universa_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nunquid_fw-la ergo_fw-la omnes_fw-la episcopi_fw-la ab_fw-la errore_fw-la liberi_fw-la omnibus_fw-la quidem_fw-la apostolis_n revelata_fw-la fuisse_fw-la secreta_fw-la caelestia_fw-la iissque_fw-la ut_fw-la nec_fw-la decipi_fw-la nec_fw-la hallucinari_fw-la possent_fw-la divina_fw-la &_o extraordinaria_fw-la via_fw-la donatum_fw-la esse_fw-la certissime_fw-la tenemus_fw-la nun●_n quid_fw-la ergo_fw-la vel_fw-la summo_fw-la pontifici_fw-la vel_fw-la caeteris_fw-la episcopis_fw-la haec_fw-la sunt_fw-la divinitus_fw-la concessa_fw-la privilegia_fw-la that_o be_v all_o bishop_n be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v so_o confirm_v in_o grace_n that_o they_o be_v altogether_o infallible_a or_o free_a from_o all_o danger_n of_o error_n in_o deliver_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n this_o the_o universal_a church_n acknowledge_v but_o be_v all_o bishop_n therefore_o free_a from_o error_n we_o certain_o hold_v that_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n the_o heavenly_a secret_n be_v reveal_v and_o that_o by_o a_o divine_a and_o
nation_n the_o kingly_a priesthood_n be_v so_o far_o amiss_o that_o it_o be_v distract_v into_o six_o hundred_o opinion_n and_o error_n and_o spoil_v and_o waste_v by_o the_o devil_n if_o the_o pope_n monarchical_a government_n be_v then_o a_o foot_n than_o it_o seem●_n that_o government_n will_v no_o more_o prevent_v sect_n and_o error_n than_o the_o worst_a if_o it_o be_v not_o then_o 1._o they_o be_v now_o usurper_n 1._o and_o they_o can_v prove_v ou●_n way_n of_o government_n to_o be_v wrong_a by_o the_o multitude_n of_o error_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n basil_n be_v far_o from_o resolve_v his_o faith_n into_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n when_o he_o write_v his_o ascetica_fw-la or_o at_o least_o eustathius_n sebastienus_n if_o they_o be_v his_o when_o pag._n 195._o 197._o tom._n 2._o translat_fw-la musculi_fw-la basil_n he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o manifest_a lapse_n of_o faith_n and_o apparent_a vice_n of_o pride_n either_o to_o refuse_v any_o thing_n which_o the_o scripture_n contain_v or_o to_o bring_v in_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o write_v see_v christ_n say_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o premise_v but_o another_o they_o will_v not_o follow_v but_o fly_v from_o he_o because_o they_o know_v not_o a_o stranger_n voice_n and_o pag._n 193._o he_o say_v that_o sometime_o he_o have_v use_v unwritten_a say_n against_o heretic_n but_o never_o alien_n from_o the_o scripture_n sense_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o now_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o make_v use_n of_o what_o he_o have_v learn_v from_o scripture_n and_o but_o spare_o to_o use_v the_o very_a name_n and_o word_n which_o be_v not_o literal_o conform_v to_o the_o divine_a scripture_n though_o they_o do_v retain_v the_o scripture_n sense_n the_o same_o basil_n epist_n 80._o to._n 2._o p._n mihi_fw-la 74._o medi●um_fw-la renounce_v the_o argument_n from_o custom_n say_v let_v us_o stand_v therefore_o to_o the_o arbitration_n of_o the_o scripture_n inspire_v from_o god_n and_o with_o whosoever_o be_v find_v the_o opinion_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o divine_a oracle_n to_o he_o let_v the_o sense_n or_o sentence_n of_o truth_n be_v whole_o adjudge_v this_o be_v basils_n judgement_n of_o the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n hilarius_n pictav_n in_o his_o 498._o epistle_n de_fw-fr synodis_fw-la adversus_fw-la arrianos_fw-la pag._n mihi_fw-la 318_o 319._o and_o full_o show_v his_o thought_n that_o council●_n have_v err_v and_o that_o even_o those_o of_o the_o orthodox_n be_v to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-la trinitate_fw-la pag._n 16._o col_fw-fr 2._o he_o say_v commendat_fw-la autem_fw-la fidei_fw-la huius_fw-la integritatem_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o integrity_n of_o this_o faith_n be_v commend_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o apostolical_a doctrine_n for_o this_o foundation_n stand_v strong_a and_o unmoved_a etc._n etc._n and_o he_o make_v it_o a_o remedy_n against_o all_o heresy_n and_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o mat._n canon_n 8._o pag._n 498._o he_o say_v igitur_fw-la secundum_fw-la haec_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la intra_fw-la quas_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la vigilaverit_fw-la naufragae_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n i._n e._n the_o church_n in_o which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v not_o watch_n be_v shipwrack_v and_o most_o full_o lib._n 4._o de_fw-la trinitate_fw-la pag._n 31._o col_fw-fr 2._o nemini_fw-la autem_fw-la dubium_fw-la esse_fw-la oportet_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v no_o man_n ought_v to_o doubt_v but_o that_o we_o must_v use_v god_n doctrine_n for_o the_o know_v of_o divine_a thing_n for_o humane_a weakness_n can_v of_o itself_o attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n it_o be_v god_n himself_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v concern_v himself_o and_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o offer_v to_o our_o knowledge_n of_o himself_o must_v we_o obey_v for_o either_o we_o must_v deny_v he_o as_o the_o gentile_n do_v if_o we_o disallow_v his_o testimony_n or_o if_o he_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v god_n as_o he_o be_v nothing_o of_o god_n can_v be_v understand_v but_o as_o he_o have_v witness_v of_o himself_o let_v man_n own_a opinion_n therefore_o cease_v or_o be_v lay_v by_o and_o let_v not_o man_n judgement_n extend_v themselves_o beyond_o god_n constitution_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o say_n must_v be_v fetch_v from_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o speech_n because_o the_o thing_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o word_n but_o the_o word_n to_o the_o matter_n and_o li._n 4._o de_fw-la trinitate_fw-la pag._n 29._o col_fw-fr 1._o when_o he_o show_v that_o the_o heretic_n use_v to_o plead_v scripture_n misunderstand_v he_o do_v not_o send_v they_o to_o rome_n for_o a_o judgement_n of_o the_o sense_n but_o still_a conclude_v respondendum_fw-la esse_fw-la existimo_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la perversitati_fw-la &_o omnes_fw-la corum_fw-la stultas_fw-la ac_fw-la mortiferas_fw-la institutiones_fw-la evangelicis_fw-la atque_fw-la apostolicis_fw-la testimoniis_fw-la coarguendas_fw-la that_o be_v i_o judge_v that_o we_o must_v answer_v heretic_n perverseness_n and_o all_o their_o foolish_a and_o deadly_a institution_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o same_o hilary_n do_v large_o persuade_v to_o a_o close_a adhere_n to_o the_o gospel_n etc._n and_o the_o sum_n of_o faith_n call_v the_o apostle_n creed_n without_o add_v or_o alter_v under_o any_o pretence_n of_o amend_v and_o show_v the_o division_n and_o depravation_n that_o have_v follow_v since_o the_o council_n of_o nice_n will_v make_v one_o emendation_n and_o on_o their_o example_n other_o council_n have_v make_v and_o mend_v do_v and_o undo_v so_o oft_o that_o they_o have_v mar_v all_o by_o it_o and_o he_o persuade_v the_o emperor_n die_v to_o hearken_v to_o the_o ancient_a gospel_n faith_n and_o not_o to_o synod_n his_o word_n be_v in_o epist_n well_fw-mi lib._n ad_fw-la constant_n august_n pag._n edit_n paris_n 307.308_o where_o have_v show_v how_o he_o have_v err_v in_o look_v after_o council_n he_o say_v recognosce_fw-la fidem_fw-la quam_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v reacknowledge_v that_o belief_n which_o thou_o desire_v to_o hear_v from_o the_o bishop_n but_o hear_v not_o for_o they_o of_o who_o it_o be_v require_v do_v write_v their_o own_o thing_n and_o do_v not_o preach_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n they_o have_v draw_v about_o a_o endless_a and_o perpetual_a circle_n for_o the_o modesty_n of_o humane_a infirmity_n shall_v have_v contain_v all_o mystery_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n in_o those_o bound_n of_o conscience_n only_o which_o he_o believe_v in_o and_o not_o after_o a_o belief_n confess_v and_o swear_v in_o baptism_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o doubt_v or_o innovate_v any_o thing_n else_o under_o the_o improbable_a occasion_n of_o this_o necessity_n sense_n the_o custom_n be_v come_v up_o of_o writing_n and_o renew_v the_o belief_n which_o after_o that_o it_o begin_v rather_o to_o frame_v new_a thing_n then_o to_o retain_v what_o be_v receive_v it_o neither_o defend_v the_o old_a nor_o confirm_v the_o new_a and_o belief_n be_v now_o become_v rather_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o time_n than_o of_o the_o gospel_n while_o it_o be_v write_v according_a to_o the_o year_n and_o not_o hold_v according_a to_o the_o confession_n of_o baptism_n it_o be_v a_o most_o perilous_a and_o miserable_a thing_n that_o we_o have_v as_o many_o belief_n as_o will_n and_o as_o many_o doctrine_n as_o manner_n and_o that_o as_o many_o cause_n of_o blasphemy_n spring_v up_o as_o there_o be_v vice_n and_o when_o according_a to_o one_o god_n and_o one_o lord_n and_o one_o baptism_n there_o be_v one_o belief_n we_o be_v fall_v from_o that_o belief_n which_o be_v but_o one_o and_o while_o many_o be_v make_v they_o therefore_o begin_v to_o be_v that_o there_o may_v be_v none_o for_o we_o be_v on_o both_o side_n conscious_a that_o since_o the_o meeting_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a we_o have_v write_v nothing_o but_o belief_n while_o there_o be_v quarrel_n about_o the_o word_n and_o question_n about_o the_o newness_n and_o occasion_n about_o the_o ambiguitye_n and_o complaint_n about_o the_o author_n and_o strife_n about_o the_o party_n and_o difficulty_n in_o consent_n and_o while_o every_o one_o begin_v to_o be_v a_o anathema_n to_o another_o almost_o no_o one_o now_o be_v christ_n for_o we_o be_v carry_v about_o by_o a_o uncertain_a wind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o either_o while_o we_o teach_v we_o trouble_v or_o while_o we_o be_v teach_v we_o err_v and_o what_o be_v the_o change_n that_o be_v in_o the_o last_o year_n belief_n the_o first_o decreeth_n that_o the_o word_n homoousion_n shall_v be_v silence_v the_o next_o decreeth_n and_o preach_v the_o homoousion_n the_o three_o do_v by_o indulgence_n excuse_v the_o word_n usia_n which_o be_v simple_o before_o use_v by_o our_o father_n the_o four_o and_o last_o do_v not_o excuse_v it_o but_o condemn_v
it_o and_o at_o last_o it_o be_v come_v to_o this_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o remain_v establish_v and_o inviolable_a with_o we_o nor_o etc._n with_o any_o before_o we_o and_o as_o for_o the_o likeness_n '_o of_o god_n the_o son_n to_o god_n the_o father_n it_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o our_o miserable_a time_n that_o he_o be_v not_o like_a in_o whole_a or_o but_o in_o part_n we_o be_v excellent_a time_n judge_n or_o arbitrator_n sure_a the_o seeker_n of_o the_o heavenly_a mystery_n who_o do_v calumniate_v in_o our_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o god_n we_o decree_v yearly_a and_o monthly_a belief_n of_o god_n we_o repent_v of_o our_o decree_n we_o defend_v they_o we_o anathematise_v those_o that_o be_v defend_v we_o damn_v other_o man_n matter_n in_o we_o or_o they_o damn_v we_o in_o they_o and_o bite_v one_o another_o we_o be_v consume_v one_o of_o aouther_n a_o belief_n be_v again_o seek_v for_o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o belief_n a_o belief_n must_v be_v write_v as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o heart_n be_v already_o regenerate_v by_o faith_n we_o be_v now_o teach_v to_o believe_v as_o though_o the_o regeneration_n be_v without_o belief_n we_o lear●_n christ_n after_o baptism_n as_o if_o baptism_n can_v be_v anything_o baptism_n without_o the_o faith_n o●_n christ_n p._n 309._o amon●_n these_o shipwreck_n of_o faith_n the_o heritage_n of_o our_o heavenly_a patrimony_n be_v no●_n almost_o profligate_v it_o be_v the_o safe_a way_n for_o we_o to_o retain_v that_o first_o and_o only_a evangelical_n belief_n confess_v in_o baptism_n and_o understand_v and_o not_o to_o chang●_n that_o good_a belief_n which_o only_o i_o have_v receive_v and_o hear_v not_o as_o if_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o council_n of_o our_o father_n nice_a be_v to_o be_v damn_v as_o irreligious_o and_o impious_o write_v but_o because_o through_o man_n rashness_n they_o be_v use_v to_o contradiction_n that_o for_o this_o the_o gospel_n may_v safe_o be_v deny_v under_o the_o name_n of_o novelty_n as_o if_o it_o be_v innovate_v that_o it_o may_v be_v mend_v that_o which_o be_v mend_v always_o effect_v this_o that_o while_o every_o amendment_n do_v displease_v every_o amendment_n may_v be_v condemn_v by_o a_o follow_a amendment_n as_o if_o now_o whatever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v no_o amendment_n of_o a_o amendment_n but_o begin_v to_o be_v a_o condemnation_n of_o it_o in_o this_o much_o o_o emperor_n constantius_n i_o admire_v thou_o as_o of_o a_o bless_a and_o religious_a will_n desire_v a_o belief_n only_o according_a to_o what_o be_v write_v ☞_o and_o indeed_o just_o hasten_v to_o those_o very_a word_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v god_n that_o the_o breast_n capable_a of_o impartial_a solicitude_n may_v also_o be_v full_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o that_o refuse_v this_o be_v a_o antichrist_n and_o he_o that_o counterfeit_v it_o be_v anathema_n but_o this_o one_o thing_n i_o entreat_v of_o thou_o that_o the_o council_n be_v present_a which_o now_o quarrel_n about_o the_o belief_n thou_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o hear_v i_o a_o few_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o i_o may_v speak_v with_o thou_o of_o the_o word_n of_o my_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o banish_a man_n or_o priest_n i_o be_o o_o emperor_n do_v thou_o seek_v a_o belief_n hear_v it_o not_o out_o of_o newpaper_n but_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o god_n remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o question_n of_o philosophy_n but_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o desire_v not_o audience_n so_o much_o for_o myself_o as_o for_o thou_o and_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o i_o have_v my_o belief_n with_o myself_o and_o need_v none_o from_o without_o that_o which_o i_o have_v receive_v i_o hold_v and_o i_o change_v not_o that_o which_o be_v of_o god_n but_o yet_o remember_v that_o there_o be_v no_o heretic_n but_o do_v false_o pretend_v that_o he_o speak_v that_o in_o which_o he_o blaspheme_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n here_o he_o name_v marcellus_n photinus_n sabellius_n montaneus_n manichaeus_n martion_n they_o all_o speak_v scripture_n without_o its_o meaning_n they_o pretend_v faith_n without_o faith_n for_o the_o scripture_n lie_v not_o in_o read_v but_o in_o understanding_n nor_o in_o prevarication_n but_o in_o charity_n hear_v i_o pray_v thou_o what_o be_v write_v of_o christ_n lest_o under_o they_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o write_v be_v preach_v submit_v thy_o ear_n to_o those_o thing_n which_o from_o these_o book_n i_o shall_v speak_v lift_v up_o thy_o faith_n to_o god_n hear_v that_o which_o profit_v to_o belief_n to_o unity_n to_o eternity_n i_o will_v speak_v to_o thou_o with_o the_o honour_n of_o thy_o kingdom_n and_o thy_o faith_n all_o thing_n profitable_a to_o the_o peace_n of_o east_n and_o west_n under_o the_o public_a knowledge_n under_o a_o disagree_a council_n under_o a_o famous_a contention_n i_o will_v defend_v nothing_o to_o scandal_n nor_o that_o be_v without_o or_o beside_o the_o gospel_n here_o he_o recite_v a_o short_a creed_n in_o scripture_n word_n especial_o about_o christ_n i_o confess_v i_o fear_v i_o be_o too_o tedious_a in_o these_o long_a citation_n but_o i_o do_v it_o that_o the_o papist_n may_v not_o say_v that_o we_o take_v particular_a word_n or_o shred_n of_o sentence_n without_o the_o full_a sense_n here_o i_o desire_v that_o it_o may_v be_v note_v 1._o that_o council_n may_v err_v and_o differ_v 2._o that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v the_o authorize_v judge_n of_o our_o belief_n that_o in_o hilaryes_fw-mi judgement_n their_o determination_n have_v occasion_v the_o ruin_n and_o dangerous_a division_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o and_o that_o this_o be_v not_o only_o true_a of_o the_o arrian_n council_n but_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a itself_o though_o its_o belief_n be_v sound_a even_o by_o the_o novelty_n of_o term_n and_o example_n for_o further_a innovate_a 4._o that_o hilary_n never_o call_v the_o emperor_n to_o consult_v with_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o authorize_v infallible_a judge_n even_o when_o he_o profess_v to_o tell_v he_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n east_n and_o west_n if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o this_o be_v because_o heretic_n believe_v not_o rome_n authority_n or_o infallibility_n i_o answer_v it_o have_v then_o most_o near_o concern_v hilary_n to_o teach_v it_o they_o when_o he_o teach_v they_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o peace_n especial_o if_o that_o be_v the_o foundation_n into_o which_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v 5._o last_o note_n that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o ancient_a baptismal_a creed_n which_o hilary_n here_o call_v they_o to_o for_o peace_n and_o heal_n of_o all_o the_o world_n division_n ☞_o o_o sad_a case_n that_o this_o advice_n be_v never_o take_v to_o this_o day_n o_o happy_a church_n when_o ever_o it_o shall_v be_v take_v and_o never_o till_o then_o and_o here_o because_o i_o be_o afraid_a of_o weary_v the_o reader_n and_o make_v these_o testimony_n unproportionable_a to_o the_o brevity_n of_o the_o disputation_n i_o shall_v forbear_v add_v those_o that_o i_o think_v to_o have_v add_v yet_o assure_v any_o papist_n that_o read_v it_o that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o want_v of_o more_o sufficient_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n on_o our_o side_n for_o i_o have_v ready_a to_o transcribe_v in_o those_o few_o book_n which_o stand_v at_o my_o elbow_n sufficient_a testimony_n short_a or_o long_o in_o all_o these_o follow_a author_n in_o their_o own_o write_n viz._n clemens_n romanus_n ignatius_n justin_n martyr_n irenaeus_n the_o suppose_a dionysius_n areop_v tertullian_n origen_n clemens_n alexandr_n athenagoras_n fatianus_n arnobius_n athanasius_n lactantius_n macarius_n cyril_n alexand._n cyril_n hierosol_n synesius_n epiphanius_n eusebius_n caesariensis_n chrysostome_n gregorius_n thaumat_n neocaesar_n greg._n nyssen_n basilius_n seleuciae_fw-la ambrose_n theodoret_n damascene_fw-la isidore_n hispal_a gaudentius_n brixianus_n vincentius_n lirinensis_n salvianus_n massil_n caesarius_n arelaten_v alcuinus_fw-la vel_fw-la albinus_n beda_n vigilius_n joannes_n maxen●ius_n alcimus_n avitus_n prosper_n fulgentius_n oecumenius_n theophylact._n bernard_n with_o many_o other_o beside_o all_o before_o name_v of_o who_o some_o speak_v full_o to_o the_o point_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n call_v we_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o scripture_n for_o the_o resolution_n or_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o not_o to_o the_o authority_n or_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n i_o shall_v only_o stay_v so_o long_o as_o to_o add_v two_o or_o three_o of_o the_o elder_a though_o brief_a and_o two_o or_o three_o canon_n of_o some_o council_n because_o there_o will_v seem_v more_o weight_n in_o
how_o much_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v at_o this_o day_n get_v beyond_o the_o sacred_a observation_n by_o use_n and_o custom_n of_o subjectional_a obedience_n 12._o and_o barth_n caranza_n have_v mention_v this_o canon_n in_o his_o sum_n council_n p._n 48._o have_v no_o other_o evasion_n but_o this_o that_o among_o all_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a copy_n which_o he_o search_v cardinal_n marcellus_n a_o legate_n at_o the_o trent_n council_n show_v he_o one_o latin_a copy_n that_o have_v metropolitan_a instead_o of_o roman_a but_o be_v this_o much_o to_o the_o purpose_n or_o if_o it_o be_v be_v one_o latin_a copy_n in_o a_o cardinal_n hand_n more_o credible_a than_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o world_n that_o have_v c●●e_a to_o light_v in_o the_o 6._o council_n of_o carthage_n au●elius_n herd_n it_o and_o augustine_n be_v there_o and_o there_o they_o again_o determine_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v not_o receive_v the_o priest_n or_o excommunicate_a person_n that_o appease_v to_o he_o and_o they_o give_v this_o as_o the_o reason_n quia_fw-la hoc_fw-la nulla_fw-la patrum_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v because_o this_o be_v never_o derogate_a from_o the_o asricke_n church_n by_o any_o definition_n of_o our_o father_n and_o the_o nicene_n decree_n do_v commit_v both_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n and_o and_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o to_o their_o metropolitan_o for_o they_o most_o prudent_o and_o just_o provide_v that_o all_o business_n shall_v be_v finish_v in_o the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v begin_v and_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o each_o province_n let_v this_o equity_n be_v constant_o and_o prudent_o observe_v by_o christ_n priest_n especial_o see_v every_o man_n have_v leave_v if_o he_o be_v offend_v with_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o know_v to_o appeal_v to_o a_o council_n to_o his_o province_n or_o to_o a_o general_n council_n unless_o there_o be_v any_o man_n that_o can_v think_v that_o god_n can_v inspire_v a_o justice_n of_o trial_n into_o any_o one_o person_n and_o deny_v it_o to_o innumerable_a that_o be_v congregat_v in_o council_n and_o whereas_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n will_v have_v send_v his_o legate_n into_o those_o part_n to_o take_v cognisance_n of_o their_o affair_n they_o answer_v ut_fw-la aliqui_fw-la tanquam_fw-la atuae_fw-la sanctitatis_fw-la latere_fw-la ad_fw-la nos_fw-la mittantur_fw-la nulla_fw-la invenimus_fw-la patrum_fw-la synodo_fw-la constitutum_fw-la that_o be_v that_o any_o shall_v be_v send_v against_o as_o legate_n from_o your_o sanctity_n to_o we_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o we_o find_v not_o constitute_v by_o any_o synod_n of_o the_o father_n but_o here_o gratian_n have_v falsify_v the_o canon_n by_o the_o addition_n of_o a_o save_a to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n where_o the_o milevit●n_a canon_n be_v repeat_v in_o which_o manner_n they_o have_v use_v too_o much_o of_o the_o church_n record_n can_v we_o think_v that_o augustine_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o these_o council_n do_v not_o understand_v what_o they_o do_v and_o purposely_o restrain_v the_o roman_a ambition_n the_o case_n also_o which_o be_v relate_v in_o augustine_n between_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n show_v how_o far_o they_o be_v in_o those_o day_n from_o dream_v of_o the_o roman_a decisive_a judgement_n the_o great_a controversy_n be_v who_o have_v the_o true_a church_n the_o donatist_n or_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n great_a argument_n be_v that_o caecilian_a have_v be_v ordain_v by_o traditor_n and_o therefore_o his_o party_n and_o those_o that_o communicate_v with_o they_o be_v not_o the_o church_n nor_o to_o be_v communicate_v with_o mark_v now_o how_o the_o catholic_n plead_v this_o cause_n 1._o they_o procure_v it_o hear_v by_o the_o emperor_n cognitor_n marcellinus_n and_o not_o by_o the_o pope_n 2._o they_o never_o once_o fetch_v their_o proof_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v they_o from_o their_o agreement_n with_o rome_n or_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n nor_o once_o in_o all_o their_o mention_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v give_v the_o popish_a description_n of_o it_o or_o fetch_v it_o from_o the_o roman_a bishop_n as_o the_o head_n but_o over_o &_o over_o again_o they_o prove_v that_o their_o church_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n because_o it_o be_v that_o which_o beginning_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v tranfuse_v over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o frequent_o they_o give_v this_o same_o description_n of_o it_o and_o hence_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o scripture_n as_o be_v apparent_a in_o augustine_n write_n at_o large_a they_o never_o say_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o roman_a or_o that_o which_o submit_v to_o the_o pope_n 3._o note_v which_o be_v the_o chief_a thing_n that_o here_o i_o do_v intend_v that_o it_o be_v public_o prove_v in_o the_o conference_n that_o first_o melchiade_n bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o other_o bishop_n be_v appoint_v to_o hear_v the_o business_n between_o donatus_n a_o nigris_fw-la casis_n and_o caecilianus_n and_o that_o they_o absolve_v caecilianus_n and_o condemn_v donatus_n and_o then_o that_o the_o donatist_n rest_v not_o here_o but_o appeal_v to_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o emperor_n cause_v a_o certain_a number_n of_o bishop_n to_o meet_v at_o arles_n to_o hear_v over_o all_o the_o cause_n again_o and_o these_o bishop_n not_o agree_v though_o they_o be_v most_o of_o they_o against_o donatus_n the_o emperor_n constantine_n be_v fain_o to_o determine_v the_o matter_n himself_o who_o absolve_v faelix_fw-la and_o caecilianus_n and_o condemn_v the_o donatist_n yet_o give_v they_o liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la as_o it_o be_v call_v then_o or_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n as_o it_o be_v call_v now_o so_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n act_v but_o as_o appoint_v with_o other_o and_o his_o judgement_n be_v not_o that_o high_a from_o which_o there_o be_v no_o appeal_n for_o the_o bishop_n at_o arles_n must_v judge_v of_o all_o again_o and_o the_o emperor_n after_o they_o of_o all_o this_o see_v augustine_n in_o brevicul_n collation_n cum_fw-la donat._n throughout_o special_o pag_n 288._o edit_fw-la paris_n &_o lib._n ad_fw-la donatist_n post_fw-la collation_n cap._n 33._o pag._n 245._o i_o shall_v only_o add_v to_o these_o testimony_n forego_v the_o witness_n of_o some_o of_o their_o own_o party_n i_o have_v before_o show_v that_o one_o part_n of_o their_o church_n deny_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n and_o the_o other_o a_o council_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o agree_v about_o the_o ultimate_a resolution_n of_o their_o faith_n their_o cardinal_n nic._n cusanus_fw-la li._n de_fw-fr concord_n cathol_n c._n 13._o &_o 34._o maintain_v that_o all_o bishop_n be_v equal_a as_o to_o the_o jurisdiction_n though_o not_o as_o to_o the_o execution_n because_o the_o executive_a exercise_n be_v restrain_v by_o certain_a positive_a bound_n and_o that_o for_o the_o better_a to_o bring_v man_n to_o god_n which_o when_o it_o cease_v the_o positive_a right_n cease_v and_o he_o say_v that_o in_o time_n of_o necessity_n a_o simple_a priest_n may_v absolve_v even_o one_o that_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o conclude_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v but_o of_o positive_a right_n and_o that_o both_o it_o and_o all_o majority_n among_o bishop_n be_v constitute_v by_o subjectional_a consent_n that_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v immediate_o from_o christ_n and_o therefore_o that_o priest_n be_v equal_a and_o that_o the_o distinction_n of_o diocese_n and_o that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v be_v over_o the_o presbyter_n be_v of_o positive_a right_n and_o that_o christ_n give_v no_o more_o to_o peter_n then_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o say_v more_o to_o he_o then_o to_o they_o yea_o and_o he_o add_v that_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o trever_n be_v by_o the_o congregate_v church_n choose_v to_o be_v their_o precedent_n and_o head_n he_o shall_v proper_o be_v more_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n then_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o be_v plain_a deal_n for_o a_o cardinal_n alliaco_fw-it that_o the_o like_a passage_n be_v frequent_a in_o gerson_n be_v so_o well_o know_v that_o i_o need_v not_o mention_v they_o and_o in_o cardinal_n de_fw-fr aliaco_fw-it and_o many_o other_o cardinal_n bishop_n and_o schoolman_n of_o their_o own_o the_o like_a passage_n be_v well_o know_v and_o so_o oft_o cite_v already_o that_o i_o shall_v forbear_v to_o recite_v they_o i_o have_v oft_o time_n observe_v how_o they_o have_v allege_v durandus_fw-la as_o plead_v that_o the_o last_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v into_o this_o primo_fw-la creditum_fw-la that_o the_o church_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o therefore_o we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n e._n g._n the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n rather_o than_o that_o of_o nicodemus_n because_o the_o church_n approve_v it_o who_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o
scripta_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la negamus_fw-la ita_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la scripta_fw-la renuimus_fw-la natum_fw-la deum_fw-la esse_fw-la de_fw-la virgine_fw-la credimus_fw-la quia_fw-la legimus_fw-la mariam_n nupsisse_fw-la post_fw-la partum_fw-la non_fw-la credimus_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la legimus_fw-la so_o then_o the_o church_n in_o hieromes_n time_n will_v believe_v no_o more_o by_o divine_a faith_n but_o what_o be_v write_v chrysostome_n say_v on_o the_o 95._o psal_n when_o any_o thing_n be_v speak_v that_o be_v not_o write_v the_o very_a thought_n of_o the_o hearer_n be_v lame_a and_o again_o on_o the_o 2_o thess_n 3._o all_o thing_n be_v clear_a and_o sincere_a that_o be_v in_o the_o divine_a scripture_n every_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a be_v therein_o plain_a the_o word_n be_v speak_v against_o those_o that_o will_v not_o go_v to_o the_o congregation_n because_o there_o be_v no_o sermon_n and_o though_o chrysostome_n be_v almost_o daily_o in_o preach_v yet_o to_o show_v they_o that_o the_o word_n read_v be_v worth_a their_o hear_n he_o add_v this_o answer_n and_o he_o proceed_v to_o answer_v their_o other_o objection_n take_v from_o the_o suppose_a obscurity_n of_o scripture_n tell_v they_o they_o be_v speak_v in_o their_o own_o tongue_n and_o plain_o orat._n 3._o pag._n mihi_fw-la 1503._o and_o on_o 2_o cor._n hom._n 3._o he_o call_v the_o scripture_n the_o balance_n the_o square_a and_o rule_v of_o all_o thing_n which_o word_n bellarmine_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 11._o endeavore_v to_o pervert_v in_o vain_a theodoret_n dialog_n 1._o inter_fw-la orthodox_n &_o eranist_n in_o the_o beginning_n pag._n 1._o say_v i_o will_v not_o have_v thou_o by_o humane_a reason_n to_o inquire_v after_o the_o truth_n but_o seek_v the_o step_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o their_o follower_n and_n in_o the_o second_o dialogue_n i_o be_o not_o so_o rash_a as_o to_o assert_v any_o thing_n wherein_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v silent_a cyril_n of_o alexandria_n in_o his_o seven_o book_n against_o julian_n pag._n mihi_fw-la 159._o say_v the_o divine_a scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v they_o that_o be_v exercise_v in_o it_o wise_a and_o most_o honest_a and_o to_o have_v sufficient_a understanding_n the_o like_a he_o have_v twice_o or_o thrice_o over_o in_o that_o same_o section_n which_o i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o repeat_v lest_o i_o be_v tedious_a ambrose_n have_v mention_v the_o diversity_n of_o heresy_n agree_v in_o una_fw-la perfidia_fw-la give_v we_o this_o direction_n for_o cure_v itaque_fw-la tanquam_fw-la boni_fw-la gubernatores_fw-la quo_fw-la tutius_fw-la praetermeare_v possimus_fw-la fidei_fw-la vela_fw-la tendamus_fw-la scriptuarumque_fw-la relegamus_fw-la ordinem_fw-la amb._n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la li._n 1._o cap._n 4._o pag._n 56._o and_o many_o more_o express_a passage_n he_o have_v as_o quae_fw-la in_o scripture_n sanctis_fw-la non_fw-la reperimus_fw-la ea_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la usurpare_fw-la possemus_fw-la this_o citation_n i_o take_v on_o trust_n from_o other_o that_o have_v before_o produce_v it_o have_v before_o mention_v more_o athanasius_n in_o his_o orat._n against_o the_o gentile_n in_o the_o beginning_n say_v the_o holy_n and_o divine_o inspire_v scripture_n be_v sufficient_a for_o all_o instruction_n of_o verity_n and_o afterward_o he_o add_v that_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n and_o our_o teacher_n do_v help_v we_o to_o interpret_v and_o understand_v scripture_n hippolytus_n in_o bibliothec._n patrum_fw-la tom._n 3._o edit_fw-la col_fw-fr p._n 20.21_o say_v vnus_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la quem_fw-la non_fw-la aliunde_fw-la agnoscimus_fw-la quam_fw-la ex_fw-la sacris_fw-la scripture_n quemadmodum_fw-la enim_fw-la siquis_fw-la vellet_fw-la sapientiam_fw-la huius_fw-la seculi_fw-la exercere_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la hoc_fw-la consequi_fw-la poterit_fw-la nisi_fw-la dogmata_fw-la philosophorum_fw-la leg_n at_o sic_fw-la quicunque_fw-la volumus_fw-la pietatem_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la exercere_fw-la non_fw-la aliunde_fw-la discimus_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o scripture_n divinis_fw-la i_o e._n there_o be_v one_o god_n who_o we_o no_o other_o way_n know_v save_o but_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o as_o he_o that_o will_v exercise_v the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o world_n can_v otherwise_o attain_v it_o but_o by_o read_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o philosopher_n i●_n so_o those_o of_o we_o that_o will_v exercise_v piety_n towards_o god_n do_v no_o other_o way_n learn_v it_o but_o in_o the_o divine_a scripture_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n stromat_n li._n 6._o say_v without_o the_o scripture_n we_o say_v nothing_o in_o the_o life_n of_o antony_n the_o author_n say_v the_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a for_o our_o instruction_n theodoret_n li._n 1._o histor_n c._n 7_o report_v the_o word_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a speak_v to_o the_o father_n in_o the_o nicene_n council_n after_o eustathius_n oration_n to_o he_o thus_o he_o show_v they_o how_o grievous_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v and_o how_o bitter_a magnus_n when_o the_o enemy_n be_v profligate_v and_o there_o be_v none_o leave_v that_o dare_v oppose_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v strive_v against_o one_o another_o and_o shall_v make_v mirth_n for_o their_o enemy_n and_o become_v their_o laugh_a stock_n special_o see_v they_o dispute_v about_o divine_a thing_n and_o have_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n lay_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n monument_n for_o say_v he_o the_o book_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n and_o also_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o ancient_a prophet_n do_v evident_o teach_v we_o what_o we_o be_v to_o hold_v concern_v god_n lay_v aside_o therefore_o all_o seditious_a contention_n let_v we_o resolve_v the_o matter_n that_o be_v bring_v into_o question_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o write_n of_o god_n inspiration_n and_o theodoret_n add_v that_o while_o he_o speak_v these_o and_o the_o like_a thing_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o consent_n in_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n all_o the_o synod_n except_o a_o few_o arrian_n obey_v and_o establish_v concord_n on_o these_o term_n yet_o do_v andradius_fw-la think_n to_o disable_v constantine_n testimony_n by_o say_v that_o the_o arrian_n be_v please_v with_o these_o word_n of_o constantine_n cavil_n and_o bellarmine_n vain_o endeavore_v to_o lessen_v their_o esteem_n because_o constantine_n be_v no_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n 62._o salvian_n say_v si_fw-la scire_fw-la vis_fw-la quid_fw-la tenendum_fw-la sit_fw-la habes_fw-la literas_fw-la sacras_fw-la perfecta_fw-la ratis_fw-la est_fw-la hoc_fw-la tenere_fw-la quod_fw-la legeris_fw-la i._n e._n you_o see_v scripture_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n with_o he_o but_o i_o will_v once_o more_o stop_v this_o work_n of_o citation_n it_o be_v so_o full_o do_v already_o only_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o lay_v those_o before_o produce_v together_o with_o these_o last_o and_o to_o compare_v with_o they_o 1._o the_o protestant_n judgement_n and_o then_o the_o papist_n i_o shall_v lay_v they_o here_o by_o he_o that_o see_v they_o together_o he_o may_v the_o better_a judge_n and_o for_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n i_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o than_o what_o i_o before_o mention_v out_o of_o their_o own_o polidore_n virgil_n that_o they_o be_v call_v evangelical_n because_o they_o maintain_v that_o no_o law_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n but_o what_o be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n and_o this_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n full_o contain_v and_o safe_o deliver_v to_o we_o which_o kind_n of_o tradition_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n as_o canonical_a say_v molinaeus_n we_o ready_o receive_v which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o addition_n to_o scripture_n that_o it_o tell_v we_o that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v add_v thereto_o compare_v this_o with_o the_o father_n judgement_n before_o lay_v down_o as_o for_o the_o papist_n judgement_n you_o shall_v have_v it_o in_o their_o own_o word_n lest_o we_o seem_v to_o wrong_v they_o vasquez_n tom._n 2._o disp_n 216._o n._n 60._o say_v licet_fw-la concederemus_fw-la ho●_n fuisse_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la nihil●minus_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la &_o summus_fw-la pontifex_fw-la potuerunt_fw-la illud_fw-la justis_fw-la de_fw-la causis_fw-la abrogare_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la maj●r_fw-la fuit_fw-la potestas_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la quam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o pontificis_fw-la inferendis_fw-la praeceptis_fw-la that_o be_v tho_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o this_o be_v a_o precept_n of_o the_o apostle_n nevertheless_o the_o church_n and_o the_o pope_n may_v upon_o just_a cause_n abrogate_v it_o for_o the_o power_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o great_a than_o that_o of_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n in_o make_v precept_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n say_v sess_z 21._o c._n 1.2_o that_o this_o power_n be_v always_o in_o the_o church_n that_o in_o dispense_n the_o sacrament_n save_v the_o substance_n of_o they_o it_o may_v ordain_v or_o change_v thing_n as_o it_o shall_v judge_v most_o expedient_a to_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o receiver_n so_o that_o they_o
may_v change_v any_o thing_n that_o god_n appoint_v about_o sacrament_n except_o the_o substance_n and_o it_o be_v well_o if_o they_o will_v have_v leave_v that_o unchanged_a the_o council_n of_o constance_n take_v the_o cup_n from_o the_o laity_n licet_fw-la in_o primitiva_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la reciperetur_fw-la a_o fidelibus_fw-la sub_fw-la utraque_fw-la specie_fw-la though_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v of_o the_o faithful_a under_o both_o kind_n so_o that_o they_o confess_v they_o contradict_v the_o primitive_a church_n bellarmine_n plain_o say_v li._n 4._o de_fw-fr pontif._n c._n 5._o si_fw-la papa_n erraret_fw-la in_o praecipiendo_fw-la vitia_fw-la vel_fw-la prohibendo_fw-la virtutes_fw-la teneretur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la credere_fw-la vitia_fw-la esse_fw-la bona_fw-la &_o virtutes_fw-la malas_fw-la nisi_fw-la vellet_fw-la contra_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la peccare_fw-la that_o be_v if_o the_o pope_n shall_v err_v in_o command_a vice_n and_o forbid_v virtue_n the_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o vice_n be_v good_a and_o virtue_n bad_a unless_o they_o will_v sin_v against_o conscience_n and_o against_o barelay_v cap._n 31._o he_o say_v in_o bono_fw-mi sensu_fw-la dedit_fw-la christus_fw-la petro_n potestatem_fw-la faciendi_fw-la de_fw-la peccato_fw-la non_fw-la peccatum_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr non_fw-la peccato_fw-la peccatum_fw-la that_o be_v in_o a_o good_a sense_n christ_n have_v give_v power_n to_o peter_n to_o make_v sin_n no_o sin_n and_o no_o sin_n to_o be_v sin_n compare_v this_o doctrine_n with_o the_o father_n the_o glass_n in_o can._n lector_fw-la dist_n 34._o say_v papa_n dispensat_fw-la contra_fw-la apostolum_n the_o pope_n dispense_v against_o the_o apostle_n innocent_n 3._o decret_n de_fw-fr conce_n prebend_v do_fw-mi 8._o c._n proposuit_fw-la say_v secundum_fw-la plenitudinem_fw-la potestatis_fw-la de_fw-la jure_fw-la supra_fw-la jus_o possumus_fw-la dispensare_fw-la according_o to_o the_o fullness_n of_o our_o power_n we_o can_v dispense_v with_o the_o law_n above_o law_n and_o the_o gloss_n add_v for_o the_o pope_n dispense_v against_o the_o apostle_n and_o against_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o also_o in_o vow_n and_o oath_n and_o another_o gloss_n say_v the_o pope_n dispense_v with_o the_o gospel_n in_o interpret_n it_o more_o such_o gloss_n you_o may_v find_v if_o not_o yet_o more_o gross_a and_o impious_a which_o i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o recite_v gregory_n de_fw-fr valentia_n tom._n 4._o disp_n 6._o qu._n 8._o p._n 5._o §_o 10._o say_v et_fw-la certe_fw-la quaedam_fw-la posterioribus_fw-la temp●ribus_fw-la rectius_fw-la constituta_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la quam_fw-la initio_fw-la se_fw-la haberent_fw-la that_o be_v and_o certain_o some_o thing_n be_v more_o right_o constitute_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o latter_a time_n than_o they_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n andradius_fw-la defens_n council_n trident._n lib._n 2._o pag._n mihi_fw-la 236._o say_v vnde_fw-la etiam_fw-la liquet_fw-la minime_fw-la eos_fw-la errasse_fw-la qui_fw-la dicunt_fw-la romanos_fw-la pontifices_fw-la posse_fw-la nonnunquam_fw-la in_o legibus_fw-la dispensare_fw-la a_o paulo_n primisque_fw-la quatuor_fw-la conciliis_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la exornandam_fw-la moresque_fw-la componendos_fw-la pro_fw-la temporum_fw-la necessitate_v edictis_fw-la qualis_fw-la est_fw-la illa_fw-la quae_fw-la interdicit_fw-la ut_fw-la digamos_a creari_fw-la ne_fw-la liceat_fw-la episcopos_fw-la i._n e._n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o do_v not_o err_v who_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n may_v sometime_o dispense_v with_o law_n make_v by_o paul_n and_o the_o four_o first_o council_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n to_o the_o adore_v of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o compose_n of_o manner_n such_o as_o be_v that_o which_o forbid_v those_o to_o be_v make_v bishop_n who_o be_v the_o husband_n of_o two_o wife_n cardinal_n perron_n against_o king_n james_n li._n 2._o obser_n 3._o ●_o 3._o p._n 674._o have_v a_o chapter_n purposely_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o alter_v matter_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o pag._n 1109._o &_o 1115._o he_o say_v that_o when_o in_o the_o form_n of_o the_o sacrament_n some_o great_a inconvenicy_n be_v meet_v withal_o the_o church_n may_v therein_o dispense_v and_o alter_v and_o that_o the_o lord_n word_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o be_v a_o precept_n not_o immutable_a nor_o in_o dispensable_a for_o the_o church_n have_v judge_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o dispensation_n for_o ●t_a b●ovius_n observe_v on_o c._n 24._o constit_fw-la apost_n say_v ecclesia_fw-la romana_fw-la quae_fw-la apostolica_fw-la utens_fw-la potestate_fw-la singula_fw-la pro_fw-la conditione_n temporum_fw-la in_o melius_fw-la mutat_fw-la i.e._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n use_v apostolical_a power_n do_v according_a to_o the_o condition_n of_o time_n change_v all_o thing_n for_o the_o better_a cardinal_n tolet_n say_v cum_fw-la certum_fw-la sit_fw-la non_fw-la omne_fw-la q●ae_fw-la apostoli_fw-la instituerunt_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la esse_fw-la instituta_fw-la i._n e._n it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n institute_v be_v not_o institute_v by_o divine_a right_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v show_v its_o usurpation_n of_o power_n above_o scripture_n in_o dispense_n with_o the_o degree_n of_o marriage_n in_o leu._n 18._o &_o 20._o add_v to_o what_o god_n have_v prohibit_v and_o relax_v what_o god_n have_v restrain_v and_o that_o to_o great_a prince_n and_o for_o a_o public_a cause_n when_o they_o make_v it_o sin_n to_o other_o man_n these_o and_o many_o more_o of_o their_o gross_a say_n and_o usurpation_n against_o scripture_n and_o above_o it_o they_o have_v be_v long_o ago_o tell_v of_o by_o jewel_n reignolds_n whittaker_n molinaeus_n and_o other_o and_o how_o sleight_n their_o evasion_n be_v the_o considerate_a and_o impartial_a may_v discern_v i_o have_v therefore_o recite_v thus_o much_o of_o their_o word_n here_o that_o you_o may_v compare_v they_o with_o the_o ancient_n and_o then_o see_v who_o be_v the_o changeling_n and_o novelist_n and_o who_o they_o be_v that_o keep_v to_o the_o old_a church_n and_o religion_n and_o among_o other_o ancient_a writer_n i_o will_v desire_v you_o beside_o all_o the_o forecited_a to_o compare_v the_o popish_a frame_n with_o the_o direction_n of_o vicentius_n lirinensis_n heres_fw-la which_o he_o give_v we_o for_o the_o discovery_n of_o truth_n and_o avoid_v heresy_n in_o his_o book_n contr._n haeres_fw-la which_o i_o the_o rather_o mention_v because_o i_o admire_v that_o the_o papist_n shall_v be_v so_o immodest_a as_o to_o boast_v so_o much_o of_o he_o as_o if_o he_o be_v on_o their_o side_n the_o sum_n of_o his_o advice_n to_o avoid_v heresy_n be_v this_o 10_o fidem_fw-la munire_fw-la divinae_fw-la legis_fw-la authoritate_fw-la 20_o ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la traditione_n to_o fortify_v our_o faith_n 1._o by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n law_n 2._o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n this_o way_n he_o say_v he_o be_v himself_o direct_v to_o by_o all_o the_o holy_a learned_a man_n that_o he_o inquire_v of_o saepa_n magno_fw-la study_v &_o summa_fw-la attentioae_fw-la perquirens_fw-la a_o quamplurimis_fw-la sanctitate_fw-la &_o doctrina_fw-la praestantibus_fw-la viris_fw-la quonam_fw-la modo_fw-la possem_fw-la certa_fw-la quadam_fw-la &_o quasi_fw-la generali_fw-la ac_fw-la regulari_fw-la via_fw-la catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la veritatem_fw-la ab_fw-la haereticae_fw-la pravitatis_fw-la falsitate_fw-la discernere_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la semper_fw-la responsum_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la fere_n retuli_fw-la cap._n 1._o edit_fw-la colon._n a._n 1613_o &_o pag._n 617._o edit_fw-la perionii_fw-la lugd._n 1572._o so_o that_o we_o be_v give_v to_o understand_v by_o this_o passage_n 1._o that_o this_o be_v no_o private_a opinion_n of_o vincentius_n but_o the_o common_a way_n that_o be_v then_o take_v by_o holy_a learned_a man_n to_o discern_v truth_n from_o heresy_n 2._o and_o note_v well_o that_o he_o do_v not_o once_o in_o all_o the_o book_n direct_v we_o to_o the_o determination_n much_o less_o to_o the_o infallible_a determination_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o way_n to_o discern_v truth_n from_o heresy_n and_o can_v any_o man_n of_o common_a reason_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n imagine_v that_o there_o be_v the_o least_o probability_n that_o vincentius_n shall_v silence_v this_o romish_a decision_n in_o a_o treatise_n write_v purposely_o and_o only_o on_o that_o subject_n and_o wherein_o he_o undertake_v to_o give_v we_o the_o full_a and_o certain_a direction_n to_o avoid_v heresy_n if_o the_o church_n have_v then_o be_v of_o the_o romanist_n opinion_n o_o intolerable_o forgetful_a negligent_a delusory_a man_n that_o will_v not_o give_v we_o one_o word_n of_o that_o which_o be_v now_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o and_o into_o which_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v ultimate_o resolve_v what_o never_o a_o word_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o whatsoever_o the_o pope_n or_o clergy_n of_o rome_n be_v for_o or_o against_o may_v be_v know_v according_o to_o be_v true_a or_o false_a because_o he_o be_v the_o infallible_a head_n
of_o the_o church_n and_o decider_n of_o controversy_n 3._o observe_v also_o that_o vincentius_n do_v full_o and_o purposely_o acknowledge_v the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n and_o never_o once_o mention_v any_o tradition_n as_o necessary_a to_o supply_v the_o defect_n of_o scripture_n or_o as_o part_v of_o god_n word_n when_o scripture_n be_v but_o the_o other_o part_n not_o a_o word_n of_o such_o tradition_n but_o only_o of_o tradition_n subordinate_a to_o scripture_n finaliter_fw-la for_o the_o true_a expound_v of_o they_o hear_v himself_o cap._n 2._o hic_fw-la forsit_fw-la a_o requirat_fw-la aliquis_fw-la cum_fw-la sit_fw-la perfectus_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la canon_n sihique_fw-la ad_fw-la omnia_fw-la satis_fw-la superque_fw-la sufficiat_fw-la quid_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la ei_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la intelligentiae_fw-la jungatur_fw-la authoritas_fw-la quia_fw-la videlicet_fw-la scripturam_fw-la sacram_fw-la pro_fw-la ipsa_fw-la sua_fw-la altitudine_fw-la non_fw-la uno_fw-la eodemque_fw-la sensu_fw-la universi_fw-la accipinut_n and_o in_o his_o recapitulation_n cap._n 41._o diximu●_n in_o superioribus_fw-la hanc_fw-la fuisset_fw-la semper_fw-la est_fw-la esse_fw-la hodie_fw-la catholicorum_n consuetudinem_fw-la ut_fw-la fidem_fw-la veram_fw-la duobus_fw-la his_fw-la modis_fw-la approbent_fw-la primum_fw-la divini_fw-la canonis_fw-la authoritate_fw-la deinde_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la traditione_n non_fw-la quia_fw-la canon_n solus_fw-la non_fw-la sibi_fw-la ad_fw-la universa_fw-la sufficiat_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la verba_fw-la divina_fw-la pro_fw-la svo_fw-la plerique_fw-la arbitratu_fw-la interpretantes_fw-la varias_fw-la opiniones_fw-la errores_fw-la que_fw-la concipiant_fw-la so_o that_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a ad_fw-la omne_fw-la ad_fw-la universa_fw-la only_o the_o church_n tradition_n that_o be_v interpretation_n be_v the_o safe_a way_n to_o avoid_v heresy_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o it_o 4_o note_v also_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o vincentius_n mention_v be_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n any_o more_o than_o any_o other_o but_o the_o tradition_n that_o he_o refer_v we_o to_o be_v that_o which_o have_v be_v teach_v or_o hold_v ubique_fw-la semper_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la every_o where_o always_o and_o by_o all_o 5_o note_v also_o that_o it_o be_v not_o any_o authoritative_a determination_n of_o any_o person_n or_o person_n whosoever_o but_o universal_a consent_n that_o he_o refer_v u●to_o 6._o and_o it_o be_v not_o in_o lesser_a probable_a or_o controvert_v point_n but_o in_o those_o great_a necessary_a point_n which_o the_o church_n have_v whole_o every_o where_o in_o all_o age_n agreee_v in_o 7._o note_v diligent_o that_o one_o of_o the_o case_n he_o put_v be_v this_o cap_z 4._o quid_fw-la si_fw-la novella_fw-la aliqua_fw-la contagio_fw-la non_fw-la jam_fw-la portiunculam_fw-la tantum_fw-la sed_fw-la totam_fw-la pari●er_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la commaculare_fw-la conetur_fw-la i._o e._n but_o what_o if_o any_o novel_a contagion_n shall_v not_o only_o stain_v a_o small_a part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o the_o whole_a church_n a_o presumptuous_a question_n in_o the_o papist_n sense_n but_o what_o say_v he_o to_o it_o do_v he_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a no_o but_o tunc_fw-la item_n providebit_fw-la ut_fw-la antiquitati_fw-la inhaeteat_fw-la quae_fw-la prorsus_fw-la jam_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la ab_fw-la ulla_fw-la novitatis_fw-la fraud_n seduci_fw-la i._n e_o then_o let_v he_o see_v that_o he_o stick_v to_o antiquity_n which_o can_v at_o all_o now_o be_v seduce_v by_o any_o fraud_n of_o novelty_n here_o 1._o he_o suppose_v that_o the_o present_a church_n may_v all_o err_v 2._o he_o make_v the_o remedy_n to_o be_v a_o appeal_n to_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o not_o as_o the_o papist_n to_o appeal_v in_o all_o case_n to_o the_o present_a church_n or_o pope_n costerus_n seek_v by_o a_o citation_n out_o of_o tertullian_n in_o his_o annot._n to_o detort_v both_o 8._o last_o note_v diligent_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o all_o case_n that_o vincentius_n lead_v we_o to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o father_n but_o only_o as_o in_o the_o weighty_a use_n beforesaid_a so_o in_o case_n of_o the_o newness_n of_o error_n when_o they_o first_o arise_v before_o they_o falsify_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o ancient_a faith_n themselves_o let_v they_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o straits_n of_o time_n and_o before_o by_o the_o large_a spread_n of_o the_o poison_n they_o endeavour_v to_o vitiate_v the_o volume_n of_o our_o ancestor_n but_o dilate_a and_o inveterate_a heresy_n be_v to_o be_v set_v upon_o this_o way_n because_o by_o the_o long_a tract_n of_o time_n they_o have_v have_v a_o long_a occasion_n of_o steal_v truth_n that_o be_v antiquity_n and_o other_o sign_n of_o truth_n and_o therefore_o as_o for_o all_o those_o ancient_a prophaness_n of_o schism_n or_o heresy_n we_o must_v by_o no_o mean_n convince_v they_o but_o by_o the_o only_a authority_n of_o scripture_n if_o there_o be_v need_n or_o avoid_v they_o as_o certain_o already_o of_o old_a convict_a and_o condemn_v by_o the_o general_a council_n of_o catholic_a priest_n they_o be_v his_o own_o word_n translate_v pag._n 677._o edit_fw-la perionii_fw-la &_o pag._n 87_o 88_o edit_fw-la colon._n 1613._o so_o that_o you_o see_v vincentius_n suppose_v error_n may_v infect_v all_o the_o church_n and_o may_v grow_v old_a and_o so_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o in_o such_o case_n only_a scripture_n must_v be_v plead_v against_o it_o unless_o also_o we_o can_v produce_v some_o ancient_a council_n that_o have_v condemn_v it_o this_o be_v the_o very_a case_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n their_o heresy_n be_v old_a and_o far_o spread_v though_o not_o universal_a nor_o of_o utmost_a antiquity_n therefore_o between_o we_o and_o they_o the_o scripture_n only_o must_v be_v plead_v where_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o judge_n by_o reason_n of_o its_o plainness_n we_o need_v not_o go_v to_o the_o ancient_a church_n where_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o expositor_n we_o be_v content_a to_o deal_v with_o they_o on_o vincentius_n ground_n and_o to_o admit_v of_o that_o which_o ubique_fw-la semper_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la have_v be_v hold_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n if_o they_o will_v do_v the_o like_a and_o indeed_o this_o be_v our_o very_a religion_n will_v the_o papist_n but_o dispute_n their_o cause_n with_o we_o on_o these_o term_n we_o shall_v ready_o join_v issue_n with_o they_o and_o doubt_v not_o of_o a_o good_a success_n of_o this_o see_v more_o in_o our_o conradus_n bergius_n prax._n cathol_n divin_fw-fr canonis_fw-la the_o dispute_n which_o we_o have_v hitherto_o manage_v be_v only_o against_o popery_n in_o the_o gross_a and_o two_o or_o three_o branch_n of_o it_o only_o in_o particular_a i_o have_v think_v to_o have_v annex_v a_o brief_a enumeration_n of_o the_o particular_a error_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o the_o vulgar_a may_v observe_v and_o avoid_v they_o and_o therein_o i_o think_v to_o have_v endeavour_v the_o true_a state_v of_o the_o difference_n between_o we_o both_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o error_n on_o the_o other_o extreme_a and_o also_o that_o we_o may_v take_v out_o of_o the_o papist_n hand_n the_o great_a of_o all_o their_o advantage_n against_o we_o which_o be_v the_o false-opposed_n opinion_n and_o unsound_a argument_n of_o such_o as_o thus_o err_v on_o the_o other_o side_n but_o perceive_v how_o it_o will_v lengthen_v this_o work_n beyond_o the_o intend_a limit_n and_o how_o certain_o all_o those_o that_o so_o run_v into_o extreme_n will_v fall_v a_o quarrel_v with_o i_o for_o not_o state_v the_o controversy_n according_a to_o their_o fancy_n i_o have_v think_v best_a for_o answer_v all_o my_o end_n at_o cheap_a rate_n to_o give_v you_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o popish_a error_n in_o the_o word_n of_o doctor_n feild_n and_o to_o that_o end_n to_o transcribe_v his_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o three_o book_n that_o so_o the_o simple_a reader_n may_v have_v some_o help_n to_o inform_v he_o without_o a_o commix_v mean_n to_o pervert_v he_o and_o for_o those_o that_o desire_v to_o see_v the_o protestant_a doctrine_n solid_o defend_v and_o can_v have_v time_n to_o read_v many_o book_n i_o know_v not_o of_o any_o one_o that_o they_o may_v more_o profitable_o and_o safe_o read_v to_o that_o end_n then_o the_o say_a book_n of_o doctor_n field_n on_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o the_o appendix_n to_o the_o three_o part_n which_o be_v but_o the_o defence_n of_o this_o very_a chapter_n prove_v it_o in_o particular_n that_o the_o western_a church_n be_v protestant_n and_o not_o popish_a even_o in_o the_o worst_a time_n before_o luther_n reformation_n and_o that_o the_o papist_n be_v but_o a_o seduce_a tyrannical_a party_n in_o the_o church_n endeavour_v to_o obtrude_v their_o error_n against_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o generality_n of_o good_a man_n in_o which_o he_o have_v quite_o break_v down_o those_o pretence_n of_o universality_n and_o all_o the_o church_n which_o the_o papist_n do_v so_o fond_o boast_v in_o dr._n field_n of_o the_o
be_v not_o all_o free_o give_v 3._o confess_v grace_n make_v we_o acceptable_a they_o will_v not_o have_v to_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o love_v we_o and_o make_v ●s_n acceptable_a to_o he_o according_a to_o that_o wherein_o he_o have_v make_v we_o accept_v in_o the_o belove_a but_o to_o be_v grace_n by_o way_n of_o habit_n remain_v in_o we_o by_o which_o we_o love_v god_n therefore_o they_o call_v charity_n a_o grace_n make_v we_o acceptable_a as_o if_o by_o reason_n of_o its_o force_n and_o merit_v man_n be_v save_v of_o god_n 4._o grace_n moreover_o when_o they_o divide_v grace_n into_o sufficient_a and_o efficacious_a grace_n they_o say_v ●ufficient_a grace_n be_v give_v to_o all_o and_o every_o man_n even_o without_o the_o church_n by_o which_o they_o have_v a_o power_n to_o will_n and_o they_o can_v if_o they_o will_v believe_v and_o by_o believe_v be_v save_v 5._o if_o any_o want_v sufficient_a grace_n to_o avoid_v sin_n they_o ●o_o not_o true_o sin_n neither_o be_v they_o guilty_a of_o sin_n before_o god_n 6_o that_o in_o the_o first_o act_n of_o conversion_n o●●w●a_n the_o will_n be_v not_o passive_a heal_v 7._o that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o man_n free_a will_n to_o resist_v o●_n yield_v to_o efficacious_a grace_n §_o 12._o of_o justification_n but_o now_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n they_o utter_o overthrow_v word_n 1._o for_o first_o they_o confound_v justification_n which_o be_v a_o act_n of_o god_n without_o we_o as_o redemption_n reconciliation_n adoption_n with_o sanctification_n and_o inherent_a righteousness_n and_o so_o confound_v not_o only_o the_o gospel_n with_o the_o law_n but_o quite_o take_v away_o justification_n itself_o the_o chief_a benefit_n we_o have_v by_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n this_o 2._o they_o teach_v man_n to_o lay_v the_o cause_n of_o justification_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o salvation_n in_o themselves_o controversy_n 3._o they_o will_v have_v remission_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v a_o blot_n of_o they_o out_o by_o which_o not_o only_o the_o guilt_n but_o also_o the_o irregularity_n itself_o be_v abolish_v 4._o as_o in_o warm_v pardon_v the_o cold_a be_v expel_v by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o heat_n so_o in_o justification_n sin_n be_v abolish_v by_o the_o infusion_n of_o righteousness_n 5._o neither_o will_v they_o understand_v justification_n in_o the_o scripture_n as_o a_o law-term_n to_o be_v oppose_v to_o condemnation_n and_o sanctification_n to_o pollution_n 6._o most_o the_o scripture_n teach_v sanctification_n to_o be_v a_o action_n of_o god_n they_o make_v the_o second_o justification_n as_o they_o call_v it_o not_o god_n action_n but_o their_o own_o 7._o grace_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n reach_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n intimate_v the_o inward_a move_a cause_n of_o justification_n which_o be_v the_o free_a favour_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n the_o papist_n understand_v grace_n or_o rather_o grace_n inherent_a in_o we_o which_o yet_o in_o the_o question_n of_o justification_n wherein_o the_o holy_a ghost_n oppose_v work_n to_o grace_n be_v not_o more_o oppose_v to_o work_n then_o their_o first_o justification_n be_v to_o the_o second_o word_n 8._o when_o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n i._n e._n of_o christ_n who_o be_v god_n for_o by_o his_o obedience_n and_o blood_n we_o be_v justify_v and_o he_o be_v our_o righteousness_n i_o say_v by_o a_o righteousness_n which_o be_v not_o reveal_v in_o the_o law_n and_o therefore_o not_o inherent_a but_o which_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n without_o the_o law_n they_o understand_v a_o righteousness_n infuse_v by_o god_n and_o inherent_a in_o we_o justification_n 9_o when_o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o we_o be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v make_v sin_n for_o we_o and_o so_o that_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n be_v communicate_v to_o we_o for_o justification_n as_o the_o disobedience_n of_o adam_n for_o condemnation_n namely_o by_o imputation_n but_o they_o say_v we_o be_v justify_v not_o by_o the_o imputation_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n but_o partly_o by_o the_o infusion_n of_o habitual_a righteousness_n viz._n in_o the_o first_o justification_n partly_o by_o our_o own_o performance_n of_o actual_a righteousness_n or_o good_a work_n in_o the_o second_o justification_n 10._o grace_n for_o they_o contend_v for_o a_o double_a justification_n the_o first_o which_o consist_v in_o the_o infuse_a habit_n of_o charity_n the_o other_o in_o meritorious_a work_n when_o as_o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n i_o e._n notby_a inherent_a righteousness_n thing_n but_o by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n apprehend_v ●y_a faith_n and_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n for_o so_o with_o other_o grace_n it_o sanctify_v we_o nor_o by_o any_o other_o faith_n then_o that_o which_o apprehend_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n or_o by_o any_o other_o grace_n because_o there_o be_v no_o other_o beside_o faith_n that_o apprehend_v christ_n righteousness_n and_o therefore_o by_o faith_n alone_o 11._o pardon_n the_o papist_n on_o the_o contrary_n teach_v faith_n to_o justify_v as_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n 12._o it_o and_o not_o so_o much_o to_o justify_v as_o to_o dispose_v we_o for_o justification_n by_o obtain_v remission_n and_o deserve_a justification_n 13._o for_o say_v they_o faith_n and_o repentance_n do_v justify_v as_o disposition_n and_o meritorious_a cause_n ex_fw-la congruo_fw-la sanctify_v 14._o but_o that_o charity_n be_v proper_o the_o justify_v grace_n diligere_fw-la 15._o and_o the_o form_n of_o justify_v faith_n it_o 16._o and_o yet_o that_o true_a justify_v faith_n may_v be_v separate_v from_o charity_n 17._o and_o therefore_o that_o a_o man_n have_v true_a faith_n may_v be_v damn_v sanctification_n 18._o neither_o do_v they_o acknowledge_v any_o special_a faith_n which_o apprehend_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o say_v that_o be_v sufficient_a which_o consist_v in_o a_o general_a consent_n without_o all_o affiance_n yea_o even_o without_o knowledge_n which_o they_o call_v implicit_a faith_n they_o 19_o for_o they_o say_v faith_n be_v better_a define_v by_o ignorance_n then_o knowledge_n 20._o question_n neither_o can_v they_o endure_v by_o any_o mean_n that_o we_o say_v faith_n only_o justify_v 21._o cause_n when_o as_o the_o scripture_n plain_o exclude_v work_n as_o cause_n from_o the_o act_n of_o justification_n though_o it_o require_v they_o in_o the_o subject_n or_o person_n justify_v as_o necessary_a fruit_n of_o justify_v faith_n by_o which_o believer_n be_v justify_v that_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v just_a but_o they_o assert_v that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v before_o god_n by_o faith_n only_o but_o also_o by_o work_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o justification_n 22._o and_o in_o this_o matter_n they_o make_v james_n plain_o to_o contradict_v paul_n 23._o and_o they_o invert_v the_o disputation_n of_o paul_n as_o if_o the_o question_n he_o dispute_v be_v whether_o faith_n justify_v without_o work_n but_o whether_o work_v justify_v without_o faith_n 24._o that_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o observation_n of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n command_n 25._o that_o man_n deserve_v remission_n of_o mortal_a sin_n by_o repentance_n alm_n deed_n forgive_a injury_n convert_v a_o offend_a brother_n and_o other_o duty_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n by_o which_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o our_o belief_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n be_v confirm_v 26._o and_o that_o venial_a sin_n be_v purge_v away_o by_o the_o repetition_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n by_o strike_v the_o breast_n by_o sprinkle_v of_o holy_a water_n and_o the_o bishop_n blessing_n etc._n etc._n 27._o that_o a_o wicked_a man_n may_v deserve_v justify_v grace_n ex_fw-la congruo_fw-la and_o that_o this_o merit_n of_o congruity_n be_v when_o the_o sinner_n do_v his_o utmost_a protestant_n 28._o they_o deny_v justificaon_n be_v to_o proper_a to_o the_o elect._n protestant_n 29._o that_o no_o man_n in_o this_o life_n ought_v certain_o to_o determine_v that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o elect_a salvation_n 30._o that_o every_o one_o must_v doubt_v of_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n 31._o no_o man_n can_v be_v certain_a of_o his_o justification_n without_o a_o special_a revelation_n 32._o that_o no_o man_n in_o this_o world_n ought_v to_o seek_v a_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o his_o salvation_n or_o justification_n 33._o that_o doubt_v of_o the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o a_o infirmity_n but_o a_o virtue_n there_o 34._o for_o any_o one_o certain_o to_o believe_v that_o his_o sin_n be_v forgive_v he_o through_o christ_n be_v abominable_a presumption_n certainty_n 35._o that_o
and_o therefore_o to_o be_v call_v upon_o to_o pray_v for_o we_o 12._o that_o the_o saint_n after_o death_n do_v obtain_v whatsoever_o they_o desire_v of_o god_n because_o they_o deserve_v it_o in_o this_o life_n 13._o that_o their_o merit_n do_v profit_v we_o for_o salvation_n 14._o that_o the_o saint_n be_v helper_n and_o coworker_n of_o our_o salvation_n 15._o that_o the_o faithful_a live_n be_v rule_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o bless_a man_n 16._o canonize_v that_o the_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v canonize_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o be_v canonize_v to_o be_v worship_v 17._o therefore_o we_o must_v fly_v to_o the_o saint_n in_o our_o misery_n §_o 16._o of_o the_o church_n 1._o church_n that_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n that_o we_o believe_v be_v visible_a 2._o and_o always_o be_v visible_a 3._o only_o that_o it_o depend_v not_o on_o god_n election_n nor_o on_o true_a faith_n and_o charity_n that_o one_o belong_v to_o this_o church_n but_o even_o wicked_a and_o reprobate_a man_n be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 4._o popery_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o roman_a or_o that_o which_o the_o roman_a pope_n be_v over_o 5._o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o same_o term_n 6._o neither_o be_v there_o any_o catholic_n but_o those_o of_o the_o romish_a church_n 7._o that_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_a who_o believe_v all_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n deliver_v whether_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o bible_n or_o not_o 8._o that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n 9_o that_o the_o note_n of_o universality_n antiquity_n unity_n and_o succession_n in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n do_v agree_v unto_o it_o 10._o that_o the_o sincere_a preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o a_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n 11._o to_o acknowledge_v the_o roman_a pope_n and_o to_o be_v under_o he_o as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n the_o only_a pastor_n the_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n 12._o that_o the_o particular_a roman_a church_n be_v the_o mother_n mistress_n and_o lady_n of_o all_o church_n yea_o the_o mother_n of_o faith_n 13._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v obtain_v the_o primacy_n from_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n himself_o 14._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v power_n of_o judge_v all_o neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o any_o to_o judge_v her_o judgement_n 15._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v authority_n to_o deliver_v doctrine_n of_o faith_n without_o or_o beside_o the_o scripture_n 16._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n much_o less_o fail_v 17._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v err_v in_o interpret_n scripture_n §._o 17._o of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o head_n viz._n the_o pope_n the_o member_n 1._o denominate_v that_o the_o roman_a pope_n be_v the_o head_n foundation_n husband_n monarch_n of_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n the_o universal_a bishop_n or_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n 2._o that_o the_o roman_a pope_n be_v the_o rock_n upon_o who_o the_o church_n be_v build_v 3._o the_o name_n which_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n in_o the_o scripture_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v he_o be_v above_o the_o church_n all_o of_o they_o be_v give_v to_o the_o pope_n unto_o this_o antichristian_a throne_n he_o ascend_v by_o a_o gradation_n of_o most_o impudent_a lie_n such_o as_o these_o 4._o that_o the_o universal_a church_n can_v consist_v unless_o there_o be_v one_o in_o it_o as_o a_o visible_a head_n with_o chief_a power_n 5._o therefore_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v monarchical_a 6._o that_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n be_v institute_v in_o peter_n 7._o that_o peter_n in_o proper_a speech_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o remain_v bishop_n there_o until_o death_n 8._o that_o the_o pope_n succeed_v peter_n in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a monarchy_n 9_o neither_o do_v they_o give_v the_o monarchy_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n but_o of_o temporal_a also_o to_o the_o pope_n 10_o neither_o do_v they_o make_v the_o pope_n christ_n general_n vicar_n on_o earth_n but_o god_n also_o 11._o they_o give_v a_o certain_a omnipotency_n to_o he_o 12._o they_o give_v he_o power_n of_o depose_v king_n and_o emperor_n and_o absolve_v their_o subject_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n 13._o moreover_o without_o shame_n they_o defend_v that_o the_o pope_n teach_v from_o his_o chair_n can_v err_v 14._o that_o his_o word_n when_o he_o teach_v from_o his_o chair_n be_v in_o a_o sort_n the_o word_n of_o god_n 15._o that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v even_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o good_a manner_n or_o in_o the_o command_n of_o morality_n as_o well_o as_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 16._o we_o must_v pious_o believe_v that_o as_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v as_o pope_n so_o as_o a_o private_a person_n he_o can_v be_v a_o heretic_n fundamental_o 17._o that_o the_o chief_a authority_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n be_v in_o he_o 18._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o chief_a judge_n in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n 19_o we_o must_v appeal_v from_o all_o church_n to_o he_o 20._o they_o give_v he_o authority_n to_o dispense_v with_o humane_a and_o divine_a law_n 21._o they_o give_v he_o power_n of_o absolve_a man_n not_o only_o from_o sin_n but_o from_o punishment_n censure_n law_n vow_n and_o oath_n 22._o also_o of_o deliver_v man_n from_o purgatory_n 23._o of_o canonise_a saint_n and_o give_v they_o honour_n that_o they_o may_v be_v pray_v to_o in_o the_o public_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n that_o church_n and_o altar_n may_v be_v build_v for_o their_o honour_n that_o mass_n and_o canonical_a hour_n be_v offer_v public_o for_o their_o honour_n and_o feast-daye_n be_v celebrate_v that_o their_o picture_n be_v draw_v with_o a_o certain_a splendour_n that_o their_o relic_n be_v put_v into_o precious_a box_n and_o public_o honour_v 24._o we_o must_v believe_v that_o the_o pope_n who_o sometime_o put_v murderer_n traitor_n king-killer_n and_o other_o capital_a offender_n into_o the_o calendar_n of_o saint_n and_o martyr_n never_o err_v in_o the_o canonise_a of_o saint_n §_o 18._o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v consider_v either_o as_o congregat_v in_o council_n or_o several_o 1._o the_o office_n of_o convocate_a general_n council_n proper_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n 2_o that_o in_o no_o case_n a_o true_a and_o perfect_a council_n can_v be_v call_v without_o the_o pope_n authority_n no_o not_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o the_o pope_n will_v not_o or_o can_v call_v one_o nor_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o heretic_n and_o therefore_o that_o a_o council_n hold_v without_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v a_o unlawful_a meeting_n or_o conventicle_n not_o a_o council_n 3._o that_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o by_o himself_o or_o his_o legate_n he_o be_v precedent_n of_o the_o universal_a council_n and_o as_o the_o supreme_a judge_n do_v moderate_a all_o 4._o that_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n make_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o legate_n be_v unlawful_a these_o 5._o that_o the_o power_n of_o confirm_v or_o reject_v general_n council_n be_v in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n neither_o be_v the_o council_n authentical_a unless_o they_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n 6._o that_o the_o distinction_n of_o lawful_a and_o unlawful_a council_n do_v depend_v upon_o his_o only_a will_n 7._o that_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o general_n council_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o last_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n from_o which_o it_o can_v appeal_v yet_o that_o we_o may_v appeal_v from_o a_o general_n council_n to_o the_o pope_n 8._o that_o the_o pope_n can_v neither_o be_v judge_v nor_o punish_v by_o a_o council_n or_o by_o any_o mortal_n 9_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v submit_v himself_o to_o the_o coactive_a judgement_n of_o council_n 10._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v absolute_o over_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o above_o a_o general_n council_n so_o that_o he_o can_v acknowledge_v no_o judgement_n above_o he_o 11._o we_o must_v believe_v with_o catholic_a faith_n that_o general_a council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v neither_o in_o faith_n nor_o manner_n 12._o that_o particular_a council_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v 13._o that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n together_o be_v not_o great_a than_o the_o pope_n alone_a turrecrem_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 41._o §_o 19_o of_o the_o member_n by_o themselves_o 1._o same_o that_o to_o make_v a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v not_o require_v grace_n or_o